Versione ebook di Readme.it powered by Softwarehouse.it    Anne's House of Dreams 
by Lucy Maud Montgomery 
To Laura, in memory of the olden time.
CHAPTER 1 
IN THE GARRET OF GREEN GABLES 
Thanks be, I'm done with geometry, learning or teaching it,
said Anne Shirleya trifle vindictivelyas she thumped 
a somewhat battered volume of Euclid into a big chest of books
banged the lid in triumphand sat down upon itlooking at 
Diana Wright across the Green Gables garretwith gray eyes 
that were like a morning sky. 
The garret was a shadowysuggestivedelightful place
as all garrets should be. Through the open windowby 
which Anne satblew the sweetscentedsun-warm air 
of the August afternoon; outsidepoplar boughs rustled 
and tossed in the wind; beyond them were the woods
where Lover's Lane wound its enchanted pathand the 
old apple orchard which still bore its rosy harvests 
munificently. Andover allwas a great mountain 
range of snowy clouds in the blue southern sky. 
Through the other window was glimpsed a distant
white-cappedblue sea--the beautiful St. Lawrence 
Gulfon which floatslike a jewelAbegweitwhose 
softersweeter Indian name has long been forsaken for 
the more prosaic one of Prince Edward Island. 
Diana Wrightthree years older than when we last saw 
herhad grown somewhat matronly in the intervening 
time. But her eyes were as black and brillianther 
cheeks as rosyand her dimples as enchantingas in 
the long-ago days when she and Anne Shirley had vowed 
eternal friendship in the garden at Orchard Slope. In 
her arms she held a smallsleepingblack-curled 
creaturewho for two happy years had been known to the 
world of Avonlea as "Small Anne Cordelia." Avonlea 
folks knew why Diana had called her Anneof course
but Avonlea folks were puzzled by the Cordelia. There 
had never been a Cordelia in the Wright or Barry 
connections. Mrs. Harmon Andrews said she supposed 
Diana had found the name in some trashy noveland 
wondered that Fred hadn't more sense than to allow it. 
But Diana and Anne smiled at each other. They knew how 
Small Anne Cordelia had come by her name. 
You always hated geometry,said Diana with a 
retrospective smile. "I should think you'd be real 
glad to be through with teachinganyhow." 
Oh, I've always liked teaching, apart from geometry. 
These past three years in Summerside have been very 
pleasant ones. Mrs. Harmon Andrews told me when I came 
home that I wouldn't likely find married life as much 
better than teaching as I expected. Evidently Mrs. 
Harmon is of Hamlet's opinion that it may be better to 
bear the ills that we have than fly to others that we 
know not of.
Anne's laughas blithe and irresistible as of yore
with an added note of sweetness and maturityrang 
through the garret. Marilla in the kitchen below
compounding blue plum preserveheard it and smiled; 
then sighed to think how seldom that dear laugh would 
echo through Green Gables in the years to come. 
Nothing in her life had ever given Marilla so much 
happiness as the knowledge that Anne was going to marry 
Gilbert Blythe; but every joy must bring with it its 
little shadow of sorrow. During the three Summerside 
years Anne had been home often for vacations and 
weekends; butafter thisa bi-annual visit would be 
as much as could be hoped for. 
You needn't let what Mrs. Harmon says worry you,
said Dianawith the calm assurance of the four-years 
matron. "Married life has its ups and downsof 
course. You mustn't expect that everything will always 
go smoothly. But I can assure youAnnethat it's a 
happy lifewhen you're married to the right man." 
Anne smothered a smile. Diana's airs of vast 
experience always amused her a little. 
I daresay I'll be putting them on too, when I've been 
married four years,she thought. "Surely my sense of 
humor will preserve me from itthough." 
Is it settled yet where you are going to live?asked 
Dianacuddling Small Anne Cordelia with the 
inimitable gesture of motherhood which always sent 
through Anne's heartfilled with sweetunuttered 
dreams and hopesa thrill that was half pure pleasure 
and half a strangeethereal pain. 
Yes. That was what I wanted to tell you when I 
'phoned to you to come down today. By the way, I can't 
realize that we really have telephones in Avonlea now. 
It sounds so preposterously up-to-date and modernish 
for this darling, leisurely old place.
We can thank the A. V. I. S. for them,said Diana. 
We should never have got the line if they hadn't 
taken the matter up and carried it through. There was 
enough cold water thrown to discourage any society. 
But they stuck to it, nevertheless. You did a splendid 
thing for Avonlea when you founded that society, Anne. 
What fun we did have at our meetings! Will you ever 
forget the blue hall and Judson Parker's scheme for 
painting medicine advertisements on his fence?
I don't know that I'm wholly grateful to the A. V. I. 
S. in the matter of the telephone,said Anne. "OhI 
know it's most convenient-- even more so than our old 
device of signalling to each other by flashes of 
candlelight! Andas Mrs. Rachel says`Avonlea must 
keep up with the processionthat's what.' But somehow 
I feel as if I didn't want Avonlea spoiled by what Mr. 
Harrisonwhen he wants to be wittycalls `modern 
inconveniences.' I should like to have it kept always 
just as it was in the dear old years. That's 
foolish--and sentimental--and impossible. So I shall 
immediately become wise and practical and possible. 
The telephoneas Mr. Harrison concedesis `a buster 
of a good thing'--even if you do know that probably 
half a dozen interested people are listening along the 
line." 
That's the worst of it,sighed Diana. "It's so 
annoying to hear the receivers going down whenever you 
ring anyone up. They say Mrs. Harmon Andrews insisted 
that their `phone should be put in their kitchen just 
so that she could listen whenever it rang and keep an 
eye on the dinner at the same time. Todaywhen you 
called meI distinctly heard that queer clock of the 
Pyes' striking. So no doubt Josie or Gertie was 
listening." 
Oh, so that is why you said, `You've got a new clock 
at Green Gables, haven't you?' I couldn't imagine what 
you meant. I heard a vicious click as soon as you had 
spoken. I suppose it was the Pye receiver being hung 
up with profane energy. Well, never mind the Pyes. As 
Mrs. Rachel says, `Pyes they always were and Pyes they 
always will be, world without end, amen.' I want to 
talk of pleasanter things. It's all settled as to 
where my new home shall be.
Oh, Anne, where? I do hope it's near here.
No-o-o, that's the drawback. Gilbert is going to 
settle at Four Winds Harbor--sixty miles from here.
Sixty! It might as well be six hundred,sighed 
Diana. "I never can get further from home now than 
Charlottetown." 
You'll have to come to Four Winds. It's the most 
beautiful harbor on the Island. There's a little 
village called Glen St. Mary at its head, and Dr. David 
Blythe has been practicing there for fifty years. He 
is Gilbert's great-uncle, you know. He is going to 
retire, and Gilbert is to take over his practice. Dr. 
Blythe is going to keep his house, though, so we shall 
have to find a habitation for ourselves. I don't know 
yet what it is, or where it will be in reality, but I 
have a little house o'dreams all furnished in my 
imagination--a tiny, delightful castle in Spain.
Where are you going for your wedding tour?asked 
Diana. 
Nowhere. Don't look horrified, Diana dearest. You 
suggest Mrs. Harmon Andrews. She, no doubt, will 
remark condescendingly that people who can't afford 
wedding `towers' are real sensible not to take them; 
and then she'll remind me that Jane went to Europe for 
hers. I want to spend MY honeymoon at Four Winds in my 
own dear house of dreams.
And you've decided not to have any bridesmaid?
There isn't any one to have. You and Phil and 
Priscilla and Jane all stole a march on me in the 
matter of marriage; and Stella is teaching in 
Vancouver. I have no other `kindred soul' and I won't 
have a bridesmaid who isn't.
But you are going to wear a veil, aren't you?asked 
Dianaanxiously. 
Yes, indeedy. I shouldn't feel like a bride without 
one. I remember telling Matthew, that evening when he 
brought me to Green Gables, that I never expected to be 
a bride because I was so homely no one would ever want 
to marry me--unless some foreign missionary did. I had 
an idea then that foreign missionaries couldn't afford 
to be finicky in the matter of looks if they wanted a 
girl to risk her life among cannibals. You should have 
seen the foreign missionary Priscilla married. He was 
as handsome and inscrutable as those daydreams we once 
planned to marry ourselves, Diana; he was the best 
dressed man I ever met, and he raved over Priscilla's 
`ethereal, golden beauty.' But of course there are no 
cannibals in Japan.
Your wedding dress is a dream, anyhow,sighed Diana 
rapturously. "You'll look like a perfect queen in 
it--you're so tall and slender. How DO you keep so 
slimAnne? I'm fatter than ever--I'll soon have no 
waist at all." 
Stoutness and slimness seem to be matters of 
predestination,said Anne. "At all eventsMrs. 
Harmon Andrews can't say to you what she said to me 
when I came home from Summerside`WellAnneyou're 
just about as skinny as ever.' It sounds quite 
romantic to be `slender' but `skinny' has a very 
different tang." 
Mrs. Harmon has been talking about your trousseau. 
She admits it's as nice as Jane's, although she says 
Jane married a millionaire and you are only marrying a 
`poor young doctor without a cent to his name.'
Anne laughed. 
My dresses ARE nice. I love pretty things. I 
remember the first pretty dress I ever had--the brown 
gloria Matthew gave me for our school concert. Before 
that everything I had was so ugly. It seemed to me 
that I stepped into a new world that night.
That was the night Gilbert recited `Bingen on the 
Rhine,' and looked at you when he said, `There's 
another, NOT a sister.' And you were so furious 
because he put your pink tissue rose in his breast 
pocket! You didn't much imagine then that you would 
ever marry him.
Oh, well, that's another instance of predestination,
laughed Anneas they went down the garret stairs. 
CHAPTER 2 
THE HOUSE OF DREAMS 
There was more excitement in the air of Green Gables 
than there had ever been before in all its history. 
Even Marilla was so excited that she couldn't help 
showing it--which was little short of being phenomenal. 
There's never been a wedding in this house,she 
saidhalf apologeticallyto Mrs. Rachel Lynde. 
When I was a child I heard an old minister say that a 
house was not a real home until it had been consecrated 
by a birth, a wedding and a death. We've had deaths 
here--my father and mother died here as well as 
Matthew; and we've even had a birth here. Long ago, 
just after we moved into this house, we had a married 
hired man for a little while, and his wife had a baby 
here. But there's never been a wedding before. It 
does seem so strange to think of Anne being married. 
In a way she just seems to me the little girl Matthew 
brought home here fourteen years ago. I can't realize 
that she's grown up. I shall never forget what I felt 
when I saw Matthew bringing in a GIRL. I wonder what 
became of the boy we would have got if there hadn't 
been a mistake. I wonder what HIS fate was.
Well, it was a fortunate mistake,said Mrs. Rachel 
Lyndethough, mind you, there was a time I didn't 
think so--that evening I came up to see Anne and she 
treated us to such a scene. Many things have changed 
since then, that's what.
Mrs. Rachel sighedand then brisked up again. When 
weddings were in order Mrs. Rachel was ready to let the 
dead past bury its dead. 
I'm going to give Anne two of my cotton warp 
spreads,she resumed. "A tobacco-stripe one and an 
apple-leaf one. She tells me they're getting to be 
real fashionable again. Wellfashion or no fashionI 
don't believe there's anything prettier for a 
spare-room bed than a nice apple-leaf spreadthat's 
what. I must see about getting them bleached. I've 
had them sewed up in cotton bags ever since Thomas 
diedand no doubt they're an awful color. But 
there's a month yetand dew-bleaching will work 
wonders." 
Only a month! Marilla sighed and then said proudly: 
I'm giving Anne that half dozen braided rugs I have 
in the garret. I never supposed she'd want 
them--they're so old-fashioned, and nobody seems to 
want anything but hooked mats now. But she asked me 
for them--said she'd rather have them than anything 
else for her floors. They ARE pretty. I made them of 
the nicest rags, and braided them in stripes. It was 
such company these last few winters. And I'll make 
her enough blue plum preserve to stock her jam closet 
for a year. It seems real strange. Those blue plum 
trees hadn't even a blossom for three years, and I 
thought they might as well be cut down. And this last 
spring they were white, and such a crop of plums I 
never remember at Green Gables.
Well, thank goodness that Anne and Gilbert really are 
going to be married after all. It's what I've always 
prayed for,said Mrs. Rachelin the tone of one who 
is comfortably sure that her prayers have availed much. 
It was a great relief to find out that she really 
didn't mean to take the Kingsport man. He was rich, to 
be sure, and Gilbert is poor--at least, to begin with; 
but then he's an Island boy.
He's Gilbert Blythe,said Marilla contentedly. 
Marilla would have died the death before she would have 
put into words the thought that was always in the 
background of her mind whenever she had looked at 
Gilbert from his childhood up--the thought thathad it 
not been for her own wilful pride longlong agohe 
might have been HER son. Marilla felt thatin some 
strange wayhis marriage with Anne would put right 
that old mistake. Good had come out of the evil of the 
ancient bitterness. 
As for Anne herselfshe was so happy that she almost 
felt frightened. The godsso says the old 
superstitiondo not like to behold too happy mortals. 
It is certainat leastthat some human beings do not. 
Two of that ilk descended upon Anne one violet dusk and 
proceeded to do what in them lay to prick the rainbow 
bubble of her satisfaction. If she thought she was 
getting any particular prize in young Dr. Blytheor if 
she imagined that he was still as infatuated with her 
as he might have been in his salad daysit was surely 
their duty to put the matter before her in another 
light. Yet these two worthy ladies were not enemies 
of Anne; on the contrarythey were really quite fond 
of herand would have defended her as their own young 
had anyone else attacked her. Human nature is not 
obliged to be consistent. 
Mrs. Inglis--nee Jane Andrewsto quote from the Daily 
Enterprise--came with her mother and Mrs. Jasper Bell. 
But in Jane the milk of human kindness had not been 
curdled by years of matrimonial bickerings. Her lines 
had fallen in pleasant places. In spite of the 
fact--as Mrs. Rachel Lynde would say--that she had 
married a millionaireher marriage had been happy. 
Wealth had not spoiled her. She was still the placid
amiablepink-cheeked Jane of the old quartette
sympathising with her old chum's happiness and as 
keenly interested in all the dainty details of Anne's 
trousseau as if it could rival her own silken and 
bejewelled splendors. Jane was not brilliantand had 
probably never made a remark worth listening to in her 
life; but she never said anything that would hurt 
anyone's feelings-- which may be a negative talent but 
is likewise a rare and enviable one. 
So Gilbert didn't go back on you after all,said 
Mrs. Harmon Andrewscontriving to convey an expression 
of surprise in her tone. "Wellthe Blythes generally 
keep their word when they've once passed itno matter 
what happens. Let me see--you're twenty-fivearen't 
youAnne? When I was a girl twenty-five was the first 
corner. But you look quite young. Red-headed people 
always do." 
Red hair is very fashionable now,said Annetrying 
to smilebut speaking rather coldly. Life had 
developed in her a sense of humor which helped her over 
many difficulties; but as yet nothing had availed to 
steel her against a reference to her hair. 
So it is--so it is,conceded Mrs. Harmon. "There's 
no telling what queer freaks fashion will take. Well
Anneyour things are very prettyand very suitable to 
your position in lifearen't theyJane? I hope 
you'll be very happy. You have my best wishesI'm 
sure. A long engagement doesn't often turn out well. 
Butof coursein your case it couldn't be helped." 
Gilbert looks very young for a doctor. I'm afraid 
people won't have much confidence in him,said Mrs. 
Jasper Bell gloomily. Then she shut her mouth tightly
as if she had said what she considered it her duty to 
say and held her conscience clear. She belonged to the 
type which always has a stringy black feather in its 
hat and straggling locks of hair on its neck. 
Anne's surface pleasure in her pretty bridal things was 
temporarily shadowed; but the deeps of happiness below 
could not thus be disturbed; and the little stings of 
Mesdames Bell and Andrews were forgotten when Gilbert 
came laterand they wandered down to the birches of 
the brookwhich had been saplings when Anne had come 
to Green Gablesbut were now tallivory columns in a 
fairy palace of twilight and stars. In their shadows 
Anne and Gilbert talked in lover-fashion of their new 
home and their new life together. 
I've found a nest for us, Anne.
Oh, where? Not right in the village, I hope. I 
wouldn't like that altogether.
No. There was no house to be had in the village. 
This is a little white house on the harbor shore, half 
way between Glen St. Mary and Four Winds Point. It's a 
little out of the way, but when we get a 'phone in that 
won't matter so much. The situation is beautiful. It 
looks to the sunset and has the great blue harbor 
before it. The sand-dunes aren't very far away--the 
sea winds blow over them and the sea spray drenches 
them.
But the house itself, Gilbert,--OUR first home? What 
is it like?
Not very large, but large enough for us. There's a 
splendid living room with a fireplace in it downstairs, 
and a dining room that looks out on the harbor, and a 
little room that will do for my office. It is about 
sixty years old--the oldest house in Four Winds. But 
it has been kept in pretty good repair, and was all 
done over about fifteen years ago--shingled, plastered 
and re-floored. It was well built to begin with. I 
understand that there was some romantic story connected 
with its building, but the man I rented it from didn't 
know it. 
He said Captain Jim was the only one who could spin 
that old yarn now.
Who is Captain Jim?
The keeper of the lighthouse on Four Winds Point. 
You'll love that Four Winds light, Anne. It's a 
revolving one, and it flashes like a magnificent star 
through the twilights. We can see it from our living 
room windows and our front door.
Who owns the house?
Well, it's the property of the Glen St. Mary 
Presbyterian Church now, and I rented it from the 
trustees. But it belonged until lately to a very old 
lady, Miss Elizabeth Russell. She died last spring, 
and as she had no near relatives she left her property 
to the Glen St. Mary Church. Her furniture is still in 
the house, and I bought most of it--for a mere song you 
might say, because it was all so old- fashioned that 
the trustees despaired of selling it. Glen St. Mary 
folks prefer plush brocade and sideboards with mirrors 
and ornamentations, I fancy. But Miss Russell's 
furniture is very good and I feel sure you'll like it, 
Anne.
So far, good,said Annenodding cautious approval. 
But, Gilbert, people cannot live by furniture alone. 
You haven't yet mentioned one very important thing. 
Are there TREES about this house?
Heaps of them, oh, dryad! There is a big grove of 
fir trees behind it, two rows of Lombardy poplars down 
the lane, and a ring of white birches around a very 
delightful garden. Our front door opens right into the 
garden, but there is another entrance--a little gate 
hung between two firs. The hinges are on one trunk and 
the catch on the other. Their boughs form an arch 
overhead.
Oh, I'm so glad! I couldn't live where there were no 
trees-- something vital in me would starve. Well, 
after that, there's no use asking you if there's a 
brook anywhere near. THAT would be expecting too 
much.
But there IS a brook--and it actually cuts across one 
corner of the garden.
Then,said Annewith a long sigh of supreme 
satisfactionthis house you have found IS my house 
of dreams and none other.
CHAPTER 3 
THE LAND OF DREAMS AMONG 
Have you made up your mind who you're going to have 
to the wedding, Anne?asked Mrs. Rachel Lyndeas she 
hemstitched table napkins industriously. "It's time 
your invitations were senteven if they are to be only 
informal ones." 
I don't mean to have very many,said Anne. "We just 
want those we love best to see us married. Gilbert's 
peopleand Mr. and Mrs. Allanand Mr. and Mrs. 
Harrison." 
There was a time when you'd hardly have numbered Mr. 
Harrison among your dearest friends,said Marilla 
drily. 
Well, I wasn't VERY strongly attracted to him at our 
first meeting,acknowledged Annewith a laugh over 
the recollection. "But Mr. Harrison has improved on 
acquaintanceand Mrs. Harrison is really a dear. 
Thenof coursethere are Miss Lavendar and Paul." 
Have they decided to come to the Island this summer? 
I thought they were going to Europe.
They changed their minds when I wrote them I was 
going to be married. I had a letter from Paul today. 
He says he MUST come to my wedding, no matter what 
happens to Europe.
That child always idolised you,remarked Mrs. 
Rachel. 
That `child' is a young man of nineteen now, Mrs. 
Lynde.
How time does fly!was Mrs. Lynde's brilliant and 
original response. 
Charlotta the Fourth may come with them. She sent 
word by Paul that she would come if her husband would 
let her. I wonder if she still wears those enormous 
blue bows, and whether her husband calls her Charlotta 
or Leonora. I should love to have Charlotta at my 
wedding. Charlotta and I were at a wedding long syne. 
They expect to be at Echo Lodge next week. Then there 
are Phil and the Reverend Jo----
It sounds awful to hear you speaking of a minister 
like that, Anne,said Mrs. Rachel severely. 
His wife calls him that.
She should have more respect for his holy office, 
then,retorted Mrs. Rachel. 
I've heard you criticise ministers pretty sharply 
yourself,teased Anne. 
Yes, but I do it reverently,protested Mrs. Lynde. 
You never heard me NICKNAME a minister.
Anne smothered a smile. 
Well, there are Diana and Fred and little Fred and 
Small Anne Cordelia--and Jane Andrews. I wish I could 
have Miss Stacey and Aunt Jamesina and Priscilla and 
Stella. But Stella is in Vancouver, and Pris is in 
Japan, and Miss Stacey is married in California, and 
Aunt Jamesina has gone to India to explore her 
daughter's mission field, in spite of her horror of 
snakes. It's really dreadful--the way people get 
scattered over the globe.
The Lord never intended it, that's what,said Mrs. 
Rachel authoritatively. "In my young days people grew 
up and married and settled down where they were born
or pretty near it. Thank goodness you've stuck to the 
IslandAnne. I was afraid Gilbert would insist on 
rushing off to the ends of the earth when he got 
through collegeand dragging you with him." 
If everybody stayed where he was born places would 
soon be filled up, Mrs. Lynde.
Oh, I'm not going to argue with you, Anne. _I_ am 
not a B.A. What time of the day is the ceremony to 
be?
We have decided on noon--high noon, as the society 
reporters say. That will give us time to catch the 
evening train to Glen St. Mary.
And you'll be married in the parlor?
No--not unless it rains. We mean to be married in 
the orchard-- with the blue sky over us and the 
sunshine around us. Do you know when and where I'd 
like to be married, if I could? It would be at dawn--a 
June dawn, with a glorious sunrise, and roses blooming 
in the gardens; and I would slip down and meet Gilbert 
and we would go together to the heart of the beech 
woods,--and there, under the green arches that would be 
like a splendid cathedral, we would be married.
Marilla sniffed scornfully and Mrs. Lynde looked 
shocked. 
But that would be terrible queer, Anne. Why, it 
wouldn't really seem legal. And what would Mrs. Harmon 
Andrews say?
Ah, there's the rub,sighed Anne. "There are so 
many things in life we cannot do because of the fear of 
what Mrs. Harmon Andrews would say. ` 'Tis true'tis 
pityand pity 'tis'tis true.' What delightful 
things we might do were it not for Mrs. Harmon 
Andrews!" 
By times, Anne, I don't feel quite sure that I 
understand you altogether,complained Mrs. Lynde. 
Anne was always romantic, you know,said Marilla 
apologetically. 
Well, married life will most likely cure her of 
that,Mrs. Rachel responded comfortingly. 
Anne laughed and slipped away to Lover's Lanewhere 
Gilbert found her; and neither of them seemed to 
entertain much fearor hopethat their married life 
would cure them of romance. 
The Echo Lodge people came over the next weekand 
Green Gables buzzed with the delight of them. Miss 
Lavendar had changed so little that the three years 
since her last Island visit might have been a watch in 
the night; but Anne gasped with amazement over Paul. 
Could this splendid six feet of manhood be the little 
Paul of Avonlea schooldays? 
You really make me feel old, Paul,said Anne. "Why
I have to look up to you!" 
You'll never grow old, Teacher,said Paul. "You are 
one of the fortunate mortals who have found and drunk 
from the Fountain of Youth--you and Mother Lavendar. 
See here! When you're married I WON'T call you Mrs. 
Blythe. To me you'll always be `Teacher'--the teacher 
of the best lessons I ever learned. I want to show you 
something." 
The "something" was a pocketbook full of poems. Paul 
had put some of his beautiful fancies into verseand 
magazine editors had not been as unappreciative as they 
are sometimes supposed to be. Anne read Paul's poems 
with real delight. They were full of charm and 
promise. 
You'll be famous yet, Paul. I always dreamed of 
having one famous pupil. He was to be a college 
president--but a great poet would be even better. Some 
day I'll be able to boast that I whipped the 
distinguished Paul Irving. But then I never did whip 
you, did I, Paul? What an opportunity lost! I think I 
kept you in at recess, however.
You may be famous yourself, Teacher. I've seen a 
good deal of your work these last three years.
No. I know what I can do. I can write pretty, 
fanciful little sketches that children love and editors 
send welcome cheques for. But I can do nothing big. 
My only chance for earthly immortality is a corner in 
your Memoirs.
Charlotta the Fourth had discarded the blue bows but 
her freckles were not noticeably less. 
I never did think I'd come down to marrying a Yankee, 
Miss Shirley, ma'am,she said. "But you never know 
what's before youand it isn't his fault. He was born 
that way." 
You're a Yankee yourself, Charlotta, since you've 
married one.
Miss Shirley, ma'am, I'm NOT! And I wouldn't be if I 
was to marry a dozen Yankees! Tom's kind of nice. And 
besides, I thought I'd better not be too hard to 
please, for I mightn't get another chance. Tom don't 
drink and he don't growl because he has to work between 
meals, and when all's said and done I'm satisfied, Miss 
Shirley, ma'am.
Does he call you Leonora?asked Anne. 
Goodness, no, Miss Shirley, ma'am. I wouldn't know 
who he meant if he did. Of course, when we got married 
he had to say, `I take thee, Leonora,' and I declare to 
you, Miss Shirley, ma'am, I've had the most dreadful 
feeling ever since that it wasn't me he was talking to 
and I haven't been rightly married at all. And so 
you're going to be married yourself, Miss Shirley, 
ma'am? I always thought I'd like to marry a doctor. 
It would be so handy when the children had measles and 
croup. Tom is only a bricklayer, but he's real goodtempered. 
When I said to him, says I, `Tom, can I go 
to Miss Shirley's wedding? I mean to go anyhow, but 
I'd like to have your consent,' he just says, `Suit 
yourself, Charlotta, and you'll suit me.' That's a 
real pleasant kind of husband to have, Miss Shirley, 
ma'am.
Philippa and her Reverend Jo arrived at Green Gables 
the day before the wedding. Anne and Phil had a 
rapturous meeting which presently simmered down to a 
cosyconfidential chat over all that had been and was 
about to be. 
Queen Anne, you're as queenly as ever. I've got 
fearfully thin since the babies came. I'm not half so 
good-looking; but I think Jo likes it. There's not 
such a contrast between us, you see. And oh, it's 
perfectly magnificent that you're going to marry 
Gilbert. Roy Gardner wouldn't have done at all, at 
all. I can see that now, though I was horribly 
disappointed at the time. You know, Anne, you did 
treat Roy very badly.
He has recovered, I understand,smiled Anne. 
Oh, yes. He is married and his wife is a sweet 
little thing and they're perfectly happy. Everything 
works together for good. Jo and the Bible say that, 
and they are pretty good authorities.
Are Alec and Alonzo married yet?
Alec is, but Alonzo isn't. How those dear old days 
at Patty's Place come back when I'm talking to you, 
Anne! What fun we had!
Have you been to Patty's Place lately?
Oh, yes, I go often. Miss Patty and Miss Maria still 
sit by the fireplace and knit. And that reminds 
me--we've brought you a wedding gift from them, Anne. 
Guess what it is.
I never could. How did they know I was going to be 
married?
Oh, I told them. I was there last week. And they 
were so interested. Two days ago Miss Patty wrote me a 
note asking me to call; and then she asked if I would 
take her gift to you. What would you wish most from 
Patty's Place, Anne?
You can't mean that Miss Patty has sent me her china 
dogs?
Go up head. They're in my trunk this very moment. 
And I've a letter for you. Wait a moment and I'll get 
it.
Dear Miss Shirley,Miss Patty had writtenMaria 
and I were very much interested in hearing of your 
approaching nuptials. We send you our best wishes. 
Maria and I have never married, but we have no 
objection to other people doing so. We are sending you 
the china dogs. I intended to leave them to you in my 
will, because you seemed to have sincere affection for 
them. But Maria and I expect to live a good while yet 
(D.V.), so I have decided to give you the dogs while 
you are young. You will not have forgotten that Gog 
looks to the right and Magog to the left.
Just fancy those lovely old dogs sitting by the 
fireplace in my house of dreams,said Anne 
rapturously. "I never expected anything so 
delightful." 
That evening Green Gables hummed with preparations for 
the following day; but in the twilight Anne slipped 
away. She had a little pilgrimage to make on this last 
day of her girlhood and she must make it alone. She 
went to Matthew's gravein the little poplar-shaded 
Avonlea graveyardand there kept a silent tryst with 
old memories and immortal loves. 
How glad Matthew would be tomorrow if he were here,
she whispered. "But I believe he does know and is 
glad of it-- somewhere else. I've read somewhere that 
`our dead are never dead until we have forgotten them.' 
Matthew will never be dead to mefor I can never 
forget him." 
She left on his grave the flowers she had brought and 
walked slowly down the long hill. It was a gracious 
eveningfull of delectable lights and shadows. In the 
west was a sky of mackerel clouds-- crimson and 
amber-tintedwith long strips of apple-green sky 
between. Beyond was the glimmering radiance of a 
sunset seaand the ceaseless voice of many waters came 
up from the tawny shore. All around herlying in the 
finebeautiful country silencewere the hills and 
fields and woods she had known and loved so long. 
History repeats itself,said Gilbertjoining her as 
she passed the Blythe gate. "Do you remember our 
first walk down this hillAnne--our first walk 
together anywherefor that matter?" 
I was coming home in the twilight from Matthew's 
grave--and you came out of the gate; and I swallowed 
the pride of years and spoke to you.
And all heaven opened before me,supplemented 
Gilbert. "From that moment I looked forward to 
tomorrow. When I left you at your gate that night and 
walked home I was the happiest boy in the world. Anne 
had forgiven me." 
I think you had the most to forgive. I was an 
ungrateful little wretch--and after you had really 
saved my life that day on the pond, too. How I loathed 
that load of obligation at first! I don't deserve the 
happiness that has come to me.
Gilbert laughed and clasped tighter the girlish hand 
that wore his ring. Anne's engagement ring was a 
circlet of pearls. She had refused to wear a diamond. 
I've never really liked diamonds since I found out 
they weren't the lovely purple I had dreamed. They 
will always suggest my old disappointment .
But pearls are for tears, the old legend says,
Gilbert had objected. 
I'm not afraid of that. And tears can be happy as 
well as sad. My very happiest moments have been when I 
had tears in my eyes-- when Marilla told me I might 
stay at Green Gables--when Matthew gave me the first 
pretty dress I ever had--when I heard that you were 
going to recover from the fever. So give me pearls for 
our troth ring, Gilbert, and I'll willingly accept the 
sorrow of life with its joy.
But tonight our lovers thought only of joy and never of 
sorrow. For the morrow was their wedding dayand 
their house of dreams awaited them on the mistypurple 
shore of Four Winds Harbor. 
CHAPTER 4 
THE FIRST BRIDE OF GREEN GABLES 
Anne wakened on the morning of her wedding day to find 
the sunshine winking in at the window of the little 
porch gable and a September breeze frolicking with her 
curtains. 
I'm so glad the sun will shine on me,she thought happily. 
She recalled the first morning she had wakened in that 
little porch roomwhen the sunshine had crept in on 
her through the blossom- drift of the old Snow Queen. 
That had not been a happy wakeningfor it brought with 
it the bitter disappointment of the preceding night. 
But since then the little room had been endeared and 
consecrated by years of happy childhood dreams and 
maiden visions. To it she had come back joyfully after 
all her absences; at its window she had knelt through 
that night of bitter agony when she believed Gilbert 
dyingand by it she had sat in speechless happiness 
the night of her betrothal. Many vigils of joy and 
some of sorrow had been kept there; and today she must 
leave it forever. Henceforth it would be hers no more; 
fifteen-year-old Dora was to inherit it when she had 
gone. Nor did Anne wish it otherwise; the little room 
was sacred to youth and girlhood--to the past that was 
to close today before the chapter of wifehood opened. 
Green Gables was a busy and joyous house that forenoon. 
Diana arrived earlywith little Fred and Small Anne 
Cordeliato lend a hand. Davy and Dorathe Green 
Gables twinswhisked the babies off to the garden. 
Don't let Small Anne Cordelia spoil her clothes,
warned Diana anxiously. 
You needn't be afraid to trust her with Dora,said 
Marilla. "That child is more sensible and careful 
than most of the mothers I've known. She's really a 
wonder in some ways. Not much like that other 
harum-scarum I brought up." 
Marilla smiled across her chicken salad at Anne. It 
might even be suspected that she liked the harum-scarum 
best after all. 
Those twins are real nice children,said Mrs. 
Rachelwhen she was sure they were out of earshot. 
Dora is so womanly and helpful, and Davy is 
developing into a very smart boy. He isn't the holy 
terror for mischief he used to be.
I never was so distracted in my life as I was the 
first six months he was here,acknowledged Marilla. 
After that I suppose I got used to him. He's taken a 
great notion to farming lately, and wants me to let him 
try running the farm next year. I may, for Mr. Barry 
doesn't think he'll want to rent it much longer, and 
some new arrangement will have to be made.
Well, you certainly have a lovely day for your 
wedding, Anne,said Dianaas she slipped a 
voluminous apron over her silken array. "You couldn't 
have had a finer one if you'd ordered it from 
Eaton's." 
Indeed, there's too much money going out of this 
Island to that same Eaton's,said Mrs. Lynde 
indignantly. She had strong views on the subject of 
octopus-like department storesand never lost an 
opportunity of airing them. "And as for those 
catalogues of theirsthey're the Avonlea girls' Bible 
nowthat's what. They pore over them on Sundays 
instead of studying the Holy Scriptures." 
Well, they're splendid to amuse children with,said 
Diana. "Fred and Small Anne look at the pictures by 
the hour." 
_I_ amused ten children without the aid of Eaton's 
catalogue,said Mrs. Rachel severely. 
Come, you two, don't quarrel over Eaton's catalogue,
said Anne gaily. "This is my day of daysyou know. 
I'm so happy I want every one else to be happytoo." 
I'm sure I hope your happiness will last, child,
sighed Mrs. Rachel. She did hope it trulyand 
believed itbut she was afraid it was in the nature of 
a challenge to Providence to flaunt your happiness too 
openly. Annefor her own goodmust be toned down a 
trifle. 
But it was a happy and beautiful bride who came down 
the oldhomespun-carpeted stairs that September 
noon--the first bride of Green Gablesslender and 
shining-eyedin the mist of her maiden veilwith her 
arms full of roses. Gilbertwaiting for her in the 
hall belowlooked up at her with adoring eyes. She 
was his at lastthis evasivelong-sought Annewon 
after years of patient waiting. It was to him she was 
coming in the sweet surrender of the bride. Was he 
worthy of her? Could he make her as happy as he hoped? 
If he failed her--if he could not measure up to her 
standard of manhood--thenas she held out her hand
their eyes met and all doubt was swept away in a glad 
certainty. They belonged to each other; andno matter 
what life might hold for themit could never alter 
that. Their happiness was in each other's keeping and 
both were unafraid. 
They were married in the sunshine of the old orchard
circled by the loving and kindly faces of long-familiar 
friends. Mr. Allan married themand the Reverend Jo 
made what Mrs. Rachel Lynde afterwards pronounced to be 
the "most beautiful wedding prayer" she had ever 
heard. Birds do not often sing in Septemberbut one 
sang sweetly from some hidden bough while Gilbert and 
Anne repeated their deathless vows. Anne heard it and 
thrilled to it; Gilbert heard itand wondered only 
that all the birds in the world had not burst into 
jubilant song; Paul heard it and later wrote a lyric 
about it which was one of the most admired in his first 
volume of verse; Charlotta the Fourth heard it and was 
blissfully sure it meant good luck for her adored Miss 
Shirley. The bird sang until the ceremony was ended 
and then it wound up with one mad littleglad little 
trill. Never had the old gray-green house among its 
enfolding orchards known a blithermerrier afternoon. 
All the old jests and quips that must have done duty at 
weddings since Eden were served upand seemed as new 
and brilliant and mirth-provoking as if they had never 
been uttered before. Laughter and joy had their way; 
and when Anne and Gilbert left to catch the Carmody 
trainwith Paul as driverthe twins were ready with 
rice and old shoesin the throwing of which Charlotta 
the Fourth and Mr. Harrison bore a valiant part. 
Marilla stood at the gate and watched the carriage out 
of sight down the long lane with its banks of 
goldenrod. Anne turned at its end to wave her last 
good-bye. She was gone--Green Gables was her home no 
more; Marilla's face looked very gray and old as she 
turned to the house which Anne had filled for fourteen 
yearsand even in her absencewith light and life. 
But Diana and her small frythe Echo Lodge people and 
the Allanshad stayed to help the two old ladies over 
the loneliness of the first evening; and they contrived 
to have a quietly pleasant little supper timesitting 
long around the table and chatting over all the details 
of the day. While they were sitting there Anne and 
Gilbert were alighting from the train at Glen St. Mary. 
CHAPTER 5 
THE HOME COMING 
Dr. David Blythe had sent his horse and buggy to meet 
themand the urchin who had brought it slipped away 
with a sympathetic grinleaving them to the delight of 
driving alone to their new home through the radiant evening. 
Anne never forgot the loveliness of the view that broke 
upon them when they had driven over the hill behind the 
village. Her new home could not yet be seen; but 
before her lay Four Winds Harbor like a greatshining 
mirror of rose and silver. Far downshe saw its 
entrance between the bar of sand dunes on one side and 
a steephighgrimred sandstone cliff on the other. 
Beyond the bar the seacalm and austeredreamed in 
the afterlight. The little fishing villagenestled in 
the cove where the sand-dunes met the harbor shore
looked like a great opal in the haze. The sky over 
them was like a jewelled cup from which the dusk was 
pouring; the air was crisp with the compelling tang of 
the seaand the whole landscape was infused with the 
subtleties of a sea evening. A few dim sails drifted 
along the darkeningfir-clad harbor shores. A bell 
was ringing from the tower of a little white church on 
the far side; mellowly and dreamily sweetthe chime 
floated across the water blent with the moan of the 
sea. The great revolving light on the cliff at the 
channel flashed warm and golden against the clear 
northern skya tremblingquivering star of good hope. 
Far out along the horizon was the crinkled gray ribbon 
of a passing steamer's smoke. 
Oh, beautiful, beautiful,murmured Anne. "I shall 
love Four WindsGilbert. Where is our house?" 
We can't see it yet--the belt of birch running up 
from that little cove hides it. It's about two miles 
from Glen St. Mary, and there's another mile between it 
and the light-house. We won't have many neighbors, 
Anne. There's only one house near us and I don't know 
who lives in it. Shall you be lonely when I'm away?
Not with that light and that loveliness for company. 
Who lives in that house, Gilbert?
I don't know. It doesn't look--exactly--as if the 
occupants would be kindred spirits, Anne, does it?
The house was a largesubstantial affairpainted such 
a vivid green that the landscape seemed quite faded by 
contrast. There was an orchard behind itand a nicely 
kept lawn before itbutsomehowthere was a certain 
bareness about it. Perhaps its neatness was 
responsible for this; the whole establishmenthouse
barnsorchardgardenlawn and lanewas so starkly 
neat. 
It doesn't seem probable that anyone with that taste 
in paint could be VERY kindred,acknowledged Anne
unless it were an accident--like our blue hall. I 
feel certain there are no children there, at least. 
It's even neater than the old Copp place on the Tory 
road, and I never expected to see anything neater than 
that.
They had not met anybody on the moistred road that 
wound along the harbor shore. But just before they 
came to the belt of birch which hid their homeAnne 
saw a girl who was driving a flock of snow- white 
geese along the crest of a velvety green hill on the 
right. Greatscattered firs grew along it. Between 
their trunks one saw glimpses of yellow harvest fields
gleams of golden sand-hillsand bits of blue sea. The 
girl was tall and wore a dress of pale blue print. She 
walked with a certain springiness of step and erectness 
of bearing. She and her geese came out of the gate at 
the foot of the hill as Anne and Gilbert passed. She 
stood with her hand on the fastening of the gateand 
looked steadily at themwith an expression that hardly 
attained to interestbut did not descend to curiosity. 
It seemed to Annefor a fleeting momentthat there 
was even a veiled hint of hostility in it. But it was 
the girl's beauty which made Anne give a little gasp--a 
beauty so marked that it must have attracted attention 
anywhere. She was hatlessbut heavy braids of 
burnished hairthe hue of ripe wheatwere twisted 
about her head like a coronet; her eyes were blue and 
star-like; her figurein its plain print gownwas 
magnificent; and her lips were as crimson as the bunch 
of blood-red poppies she wore at her belt. 
Gilbert, who is the girl we have just passed?asked 
Annein a low voice. 
I didn't notice any girl,said Gilbertwho had eyes 
only for his bride. 
She was standing by that gate--no, don't look back. 
She is still watching us. I never saw such a beautiful 
face.
I don't remember seeing any very handsome girls while 
I was here. There are some pretty girls up at the 
Glen, but I hardly think they could be called 
beautiful.
This girl is. You can't have seen her, or you would 
remember her. Nobody could forget her. I never saw 
such a face except in pictures. And her hair! It made 
me think of Browning's `cord of gold' and `gorgeous 
snake'!
Probably she's some visitor in Four Winds--likely 
some one from that big summer hotel over the harbor.
She wore a white apron and she was driving geese.
She might do that for amusement. Look, Anne--there's 
our house.
Anne looked and forgot for a time the girl with the 
splendidresentful eyes. The first glimpse of her new 
home was a delight to eye and spirit--it looked so like 
a bigcreamy seashell stranded on the harbor shore. 
The rows of tall Lombardy poplars down its lane stood 
out in statelypurple silhouette against the sky. 
Behind itsheltering its garden from the too keen 
breath of sea windswas a cloudy fir woodin which 
the winds might make all kinds of weird and haunting 
music. Like all woodsit seemed to be holding and 
enfolding secrets in its recesses--secrets whose charm 
is only to be won by entering in and patiently seeking. 
Outwardlydark green arms keep them inviolate from 
curious or indifferent eyes. 
The night winds were beginning their wild dances beyond 
the bar and the fishing hamlet across the harbor was 
gemmed with lights as Anne and Gilbert drove up the 
poplar lane. The door of the little house openedand 
a warm glow of firelight flickered out into the dusk. 
Gilbert lifted Anne from the buggy and led her into the 
gardenthrough the little gate between the 
ruddy-tipped firsup the trimred path to the 
sandstone step. 
Welcome home,he whisperedand hand in hand they 
stepped over the threshold of their house of dreams. 
CHAPTER 6 
CAPTAIN JIM 
Old Doctor Daveand "Mrs. Doctor Dave" had come down 
to the little house to greet the bride and groom. 
Doctor Dave was a bigjollywhite-whiskered old 
fellowand Mrs. Doctor was a trim rosy-cheeked
silver-haired little lady who took Anne at once 
to her heartliterally and figuratively. 
I'm so glad to see you, dear. You must be real 
tired. We've got a bite of supper ready, and Captain 
Jim brought up some trout for you. Captain Jim--where 
are you? Oh, he's slipped out to see to the horse, I 
suppose. Come upstairs and take your things off.
Anne looked about her with brightappreciative eyes as 
she followed Mrs. Doctor Dave upstairs. She liked the 
appearance of her new home very much. It seemed to 
have the atmosphere of Green Gables and the flavor of 
her old traditions. 
I think I would have found Miss Elizabeth Russell a 
`kindred spirit,'she murmured when she was alone in 
her room. There were two windows in it; the dormer one 
looked out on the lower harbor and the sand-bar and the 
Four Winds light.
A magic casement opening on the foam Of 
perilous seas in fairy lands forlorn,
quoted Anne softly. The gable window gave a view of a 
little harvest-hued valley through which a brook ran. 
Half a mile up the brook was the only house in 
sight--an oldramblinggray one surrounded by huge 
willows through which its windows peeredlike shy
seeking eyesinto the dusk. Anne wondered who lived 
there; they would be her nearest neighbors and she 
hoped they would be nice. She suddenly found herself 
thinking of the beautiful girl with the white geese. 
Gilbert thought she didn't belong here,mused Anne
but I feel sure she does. There was something about 
her that made her part of the sea and the sky and the 
harbor. Four Winds is in her blood.
When Anne went downstairs Gilbert was standing before 
the fireplace talking to a stranger. Both turned as 
Anne entered. 
Anne, this is Captain Boyd. Captain Boyd, my wife.
It was the first time Gilbert had said "my wife" to 
anybody but Anneand he narrowly escaped bursting with 
the pride of it. The old captain held out a sinewy 
hand to Anne; they smiled at each other and were 
friends from that moment. Kindred spirit flashed 
recognition to kindred spirit. 
I'm right down pleased to meet you, Mistress Blythe; 
and I hope you'll be as happy as the first bride was 
who came here. I can't wish you no better than THAT. 
But your husband doesn't introduce me jest exactly 
right. `Captain Jim' is my week-a-day name and you 
might as well begin as you're sartain to end 
up--calling me that. You sartainly are a nice little 
bride, Mistress Blythe. Looking at you sorter makes 
me feel that I've jest been married myself.
Amid the laughter that followed Mrs. Doctor Dave urged 
Captain Jim to stay and have supper with them. 
Thank you kindly. 'Twill be a real treat, Mistress 
Doctor. I mostly has to eat my meals alone, with the 
reflection of my ugly old phiz in a looking-glass 
opposite for company. 'Tisn't often I have a chance to 
sit down with two such sweet, purty ladies.
Captain Jim's compliments may look very bald on paper
but he paid them with such a graciousgentle deference 
of tone and look that the woman upon whom they were 
bestowed felt that she was being offered a queen's 
tribute in a kingly fashion. 
Captain Jim was a high-souledsimple-minded old man
with eternal youth in his eyes and heart. He had a 
tallrather ungainly figuresomewhat stoopedyet 
suggestive of great strength and endurance; a 
clean-shaven face deeply lined and bronzed; a thick 
mane of iron-gray hair falling quite to his shoulders
and a pair of remarkably bluedeep-set eyeswhich 
sometimes twinkled and sometimes dreamedand 
sometimes looked out seaward with a wistful quest in 
themas of one seeking something precious and lost. 
Anne was to learn one day what it was for which Captain 
Jim looked. 
It could not be denied that Captain Jim was a homely 
man. His spare jawsrugged mouthand square brow 
were not fashioned on the lines of beauty; and he had 
passed through many hardships and sorrows which had 
marked his body as well as his soul; but though at 
first sight Anne thought him plain she never thought 
anything more about it--the spirit shining through that 
rugged tenement beautified it so wholly. 
They gathered gaily around the supper table. The 
hearth fire banished the chill of the September 
eveningbut the window of the dining room was open and 
sea breezes entered at their own sweet will. The view 
was magnificenttaking in the harbor and the sweep of 
lowpurple hills beyond. The table was heaped with 
Mrs. Doctor's delicacies but the piece de resistance 
was undoubtedly the big platter of sea trout. 
Thought they'd be sorter tasty after travelling,
said Captain Jim. "They're fresh as trout can be
Mistress Blythe. Two hours ago they were swimming in 
the Glen Pond." 
Who is attending to the light tonight, Captain Jim?
asked Doctor Dave. 
Nephew Alec. He understands it as well as I do. 
Well, now, I'm real glad you asked me to stay to 
supper. I'm proper hungry--didn't have much of a 
dinner today.
I believe you half starve yourself most of the time 
down at that light,said Mrs. Doctor Dave severely. 
You won't take the trouble to get up a decent meal.
Oh, I do, Mistress Doctor, I do,protested Captain 
Jim. "WhyI live like a king gen'rally. Last night 
I was up to the Glen and took home two pounds of steak. 
I meant to have a spanking good dinner today." 
And what happened to the steak?asked Mrs. Doctor 
Dave. "Did you lose it on the way home?" 
No.Captain Jim looked sheepish. "Just at bedtime 
a poorornery sort of dog came along and asked for a 
night's lodging. Guess he belonged to some of the 
fishermen 'long shore. I couldn't turn the poor cur 
out--he had a sore foot. So I shut him in the porch
with an old bag to lie onand went to bed. But 
somehow I couldn't sleep. Come to think it overI 
sorter remembered that the dog looked hungry." 
And you got up and gave him that steak--ALL that 
steak,said Mrs. Doctor Davewith a kind of 
triumphant reproof. 
Well, there wasn't anything else TO give him,said 
Captain Jim deprecatingly. "Nothing a dog'd care for
that is. I reckon he WAS hungryfor he made about two 
bites of it. I had a fine sleep the rest of the night 
but my dinner had to be sorter scanty--potatoes and 
pointas you might say. The doghe lit out for home 
this morning. I reckon HE weren't a vegetarian." 
The idea of starving yourself for a worthless dog!
sniffed Mrs. Doctor. 
You don't know but he may be worth a lot to 
somebody,protested Captain Jim. "He didn't LOOK of 
much accountbut you can't go by looks in jedging a 
dog. Like meselfhe might be a real beauty inside. 
The First Mate didn't approve of himI'll allow. His 
language was right down forcible. But the First Mate is 
prejudiced. No use in taking a cat's opinion of a dog. 
'TennyrateI lost my dinnerso this nice spread in 
this dee-lightful company is real pleasant. It' s a 
great thing to have good neighbors." 
Who lives in the house among the willows up the 
brook?asked Anne. 
Mrs. Dick Moore,said Captain Jim--"and her 
husband he added, as if by way of an afterthought. 
Anne smiled, and deduced a mental picture of Mrs. Dick 
Moore from Captain Jim's way of putting it; evidently a 
second Mrs. Rachel Lynde. 
You haven't many neighborsMistress Blythe Captain 
Jim went on. This side of the harbor is mighty thinly 
settled. Most of the land belongs to Mr. Howard up 
yander past the Glenand he rents it out for pasture. 
The other side of the harbornowis thick with 
folks--'specially MacAllisters. There's a whole 
colony of MacAllisters you can't throw a stone but you 
hit one. I was talking to old Leon Blacquiere the 
other day. He's been working on the harbor all summer. 
`Dey're nearly all MacAllisters over thar' he told me. 
`Dare's Neil MacAllister and Sandy MacAllister and 
William MacAllister and Alec MacAllister and Angus 
MacAllister--and I believe dare's de Devil 
MacAllister.'" 
There are nearly as many Elliotts and Crawfords,
said Doctor Daveafter the laughter had subsided. 
You know, Gilbert, we folk on this side of Four Winds 
have an old saying--`From the conceit of the Elliotts, 
the pride of the MacAllisters, and the vainglory of the 
Crawfords, good Lord deliver us.'
There's a plenty of fine people among them, though,
said Captain Jim. "I sailed with William Crawford for 
many a yearand for courage and endurance and truth 
that man hadn't an equal. They've got brains over on 
that side of Four Winds. Mebbe that's why this side is 
sorter inclined to pick on 'em. Strangeain't ithow 
folks seem to resent anyone being born a mite cleverer 
than they be." 
Doctor Davewho had a forty years' feud with the 
over-harbor peoplelaughed and subsided. 
Who lives in that brilliant emerald house about half 
a mile up the road?asked Gilbert. 
Captain Jim smiled delightedly. 
Miss Cornelia Bryant. She'll likely be over to see 
you soon, seeing you're Presbyterians. If you were 
Methodists she wouldn't come at all. Cornelia has a 
holy horror of Methodists.
She's quite a character,chuckled Doctor Dave. "A 
most inveterate man-hater!" 
Sour grapes?queried Gilbertlaughing. 
No, 'tisn't sour grapes,answered Captain Jim 
seriously. "Cornelia could have had her pick when she 
was young. Even yet she's only to say the word to see 
the old widowers jump. She jest seems to have been 
born with a sort of chronic spite agin men and 
Methodists. She's got the bitterest tongue and the 
kindest heart in Four Winds. Wherever there's any 
troublethat woman is theredoing everything to help 
in the tenderest way. She never says a harsh word 
about another womanand if she likes to card us poor 
scalawags of men down I reckon our tough old hides can 
stand it." 
She always speaks well of you, Captain Jim,said 
Mrs. Doctor. 
Yes, I'm afraid so. I don't half like it. It makes 
me feel as if there must be something sorter unnateral 
about me.
CHAPTER 7 
THE SCHOOLMASTER'S BRIDE 
Who was the first bride who came to this house, 
Captain Jim?Anne askedas they sat around the 
fireplace after supper. 
Was she a part of the story I've heard was connected 
with this house?asked Gilbert. "Somebody told me 
you could tell itCaptain Jim." 
Well, yes, I know it. I reckon I'm the only person 
living in Four Winds now that can remember the 
schoolmaster's bride as she was when she come to the 
Island. She's been dead this thirty year, but she was 
one of them women you never forget.
Tell us the story,pleaded Anne. "I want to find 
out all about the women who have lived in this house 
before me." 
Well, there's jest been three--Elizabeth Russell, and 
Mrs. Ned Russell, and the schoolmaster's bride. 
Elizabeth Russell was a nice, clever little critter, 
and Mrs. Ned was a nice woman, too. But they weren't 
ever like the schoolmaster's bride. 
The schoolmaster's name was John Selwyn. He came out 
from the Old Country to teach school at the Glen when I 
was a boy of sixteen. He wasn't much like the usual 
run of derelicts who used to come out to P.E.I. to 
teach school in them days. Most of them were clever
drunken critters who taught the children the three R's 
when they were soberand lambasted them when they 
wasn't. But John Selwyn was a finehandsome young 
fellow. He boarded at my father'sand he and me were 
croniesthough he was ten years older'n me. We read 
and walked and talked a heap together. He knew about 
all the poetry that was ever writtenI reckonand he 
used to quote it to me along shore in the evenings. 
Dad thought it an awful waste of timebut he sorter 
endured ithoping it'd put me off the notion of going 
to sea. Wellnothing could do THAT--mother come of a 
race of sea-going folk and it was born in me. But I 
loved to hear John read and recite. It's almost sixty 
years agobut I could repeat yards of poetry I learned 
from him. Nearly sixty years!" 
Captain Jim was silent for a spacegazing into the 
glowing fire in a quest of the bygones. Thenwith a 
sighhe resumed his story. 
I remember one spring evening I met him on the 
sand-hills. He looked sorter uplifted--jest like you 
did, Dr. Blythe, when you brought Mistress Blythe in 
tonight. I thought of him the minute I seen you. And 
he told me that he had a sweetheart back home and that 
she was coming out to him. I wasn't more'n half 
pleased, ornery young lump of selfishness that I was; I 
thought he wouldn't be as much my friend after she 
came. But I'd enough decency not to let him see it. 
He told me all about her. Her name was Persis Leigh, 
and she would have come out with him if it hadn't been 
for her old uncle. He was sick, and he'd looked after 
her when her parents died and she wouldn't leave him. 
And now he was dead and she was coming out to marry 
John Selwyn. 'Twasn't no easy journey for a woman in 
them days. There weren't no steamers, you must 
ricollect. 
`When do you expect her?' says I. 
`She sails on the Royal William, the 20th of June,' 
says he, `and so she should be here by mid-July. I 
must set Carpenter Johnson to building me a home for 
her. Her letter come today. I know before I opened it 
that it had good news for me. I saw her a few nights 
ago.' 
I didn't understand himand then he 
explained--though I didn't understand THAT much better. 
He said he had a gift--or a curse. Them was his words
Mistress Blythe--a gift or a curse. He didn't know 
which it was. He said a great-great-grandmother of his 
had had itand they burned her for a witch on account 
of it. He said queer spells--trancesI think was the 
name he give 'em--come over him now and again. Are 
there such thingsDoctor?" 
There are people who are certainly subject to 
trances,answered Gilbert. "The matter is more in 
the line of psychical research than medical. What were 
the trances of this John Selwyn like?" 
Like dreams,said the old Doctor skeptically. 
He said he could see things in them,said Captain 
Jim slowly. 
Mind you, I'm telling you jest what HE said--things 
that were happening--things that were GOING to happen. 
He said they were sometimes a comfort to him and 
sometimes a horror. Four nights before this he'd been 
in one--went into it while he was sitting looking at 
the fire. And he saw an old room he knew well in 
England, and Persis Leigh in it, holding out her hands 
to him and looking glad and happy. So he knew he was 
going to hear good news of her.
A dream--a dream,scoffed the old Doctor. 
Likely--likely,conceded Captain Jim. "That's what 
_I_ said to him at the time. It was a vast more 
comfortable to think so. I didn't like the idea of him 
seeing things like that--it was real uncanny. 
`No,' says he, `I didn't dream it. But we won't talk 
of this again. You won't be so much my friend if you 
think much about it.' 
I told him nothing could make me any less his friend. 
But he jest shook his head and sayssays he: 
`Lad, I know. I've lost friends before because of 
this. I don't blame them. There are times when I feel 
hardly friendly to myself because of it. Such a power 
has a bit of divinity in it--whether of a good or an 
evil divinity who shall say? And we mortals all shrink 
from too close contact with God or devil.' 
Them was his words. I remember them as if 'twas 
yesterdaythough I didn't know jest what he meant. 
What do you s'pose he DID meandoctor?" 
I doubt if he knew what he meant himself,said 
Doctor Dave testily. 
I think I understand,whispered Anne. She was 
listening in her old attitude of clasped lips and 
shining eyes. Captain Jim treated himself to an 
admiring smile before he went on with his story. 
Well, purty soon all the Glen and Four Winds people 
knew the schoolmaster's bride was coming, and they were 
all glad because they thought so much of him. And 
everybody took an interest in his new house--THIS 
house. He picked this site for it, because you could 
see the harbor and hear the sea from it. He made the 
garden out there for his bride, but he didn't plant the 
Lombardies. Mrs. Ned Russell planted THEM. But 
there's a double row of rose-bushes in the garden that 
the little girls who went to the Glen school set out 
there for the schoolmaster's bride. He said they were 
pink for her cheeks and white for her brow and red for 
her lips. He'd quoted poetry so much that he sorter 
got into the habit of talking it, too, I reckon. 
Almost everybody sent him some little present to help 
out the furnishing of the house. When the Russells 
came into it they were well-to-do and furnished it real 
handsomeas you can see; but the first furniture that 
went into it was plain enough. This little house was 
rich in lovethough. The women sent in quilts and 
tablecloths and towelsand one man made a chest for 
herand another a table and so on. Even blind old 
Aunt Margaret Boyd wove a little basket for her out of 
the sweet-scented sand-hill grass. The schoolmaster's 
wife used it for years to keep her handkerchiefs in. 
Well, at last everything was ready--even to the logs 
in the big fireplace ready for lighting. 'Twasn't 
exactly THIS fireplace, though 'twas in the same place. 
Miss Elizabeth had this put in when she made the house 
over fifteen years ago. It was a big, old-fashioned 
fireplace where you could have roasted an ox. Many's 
the time I've sat here and spun yarns, same's I'm doing 
tonight.
Again there was a silencewhile Captain Jim kept a 
passing tryst with visitants Anne and Gilbert could not 
see--the folks who had sat with him around that 
fireplace in the vanished yearswith mirth and bridal 
joy shining in eyes long since closed forever under 
churchyard sod or heaving leagues of sea. Here on 
olden nights children had tossed laughter lightly to 
and fro. Here on winter evenings friends had 
gathered. Dance and music and jest had been here. 
Here youths and maidens had dreamed. For Captain Jim 
the little house was tenanted with shapes entreating 
remembrance. 
It was the first of July when the house was finished. 
The schoolmaster began to count the days then. We used 
to see him walking along the shore, and we'd say to 
each other, `She'll soon be with him now.' 
She was expected the middle of Julybut she didn't 
come then. Nobody felt anxious. Vessels were often 
delayed for days and mebbe weeks. The Royal William 
was a week overdue--and then two--and then three. And 
at last we began to be frightenedand it got worse and 
worse. Fin'lly I couldn't bear to look into John 
Selwyn's eyes. D'ye knowMistress Blythe"--Captain 
Jim lowered his voice--"I used to think that they 
looked just like what his old great-great-grandmother's 
must have been when they were burning her to death. He 
never said much but he taught school like a man in a 
dream and then hurried to the shore. Many a night he 
walked there from dark to dawn. People said he was 
losing his mind. Everybody had given up hope--the 
Royal William was eight weeks overdue. It was the 
middle of September and the schoolmaster's bride hadn't 
come-- never would comewe thought. 
There was a big storm then that lasted three days, and 
on the evening after it died away I went to the shore. 
I found the schoolmaster there, leaning with his arms 
folded against a big rock, gazing out to sea. 
I spoke to him but he didn't answer. His eyes seemed 
to be looking at something I couldn't see. His face 
was setlike a dead man's. 
`John--John,' I called out--jest like that--jest like 
a frightened child, `wake up--wake up.' 
That strangeawful look seemed to sorter fade out of 
his eyes. 
He turned his head and looked at me. I've never forgot 
his face-- never will forget it till I ships for my 
last voyage. 
`All is well, lad,' he says. `I've seen the Royal 
William coming around East Point. She will be here by 
dawn. Tomorrow night I shall sit with my bride by my 
own hearth-fire.' 
Do you think he did see it?" demanded Captain Jim 
abruptly. 
God knows,said Gilbert softly. "Great love and 
great pain might compass we know not what marvels." 
I am sure he did see it,said Anne earnestly. 
Fol-de-rol,said Doctor Davebut he spoke with less 
conviction than usual. 
Because, you know,said Captain Jim solemnlythe 
Royal William came into Four Winds Harbor at daylight 
the next morning. 
Every soul in the Glen and along the shore was at the 
old wharf to meet her. The schoolmaster had been 
watching there all night. How we cheered as she sailed 
up the channel.
Captain Jim's eyes were shining. They were looking at 
the Four Winds Harbor of sixty years agonewith a 
battered old ship sailing through the sunrise splendor. 
And Persis Leigh was on board?asked Anne. 
Yes--her and the captain's wife. They'd had an awful 
passage-- storm after storm--and their provisions give 
out, too. But there they were at last. When Persis 
Leigh stepped onto the old wharf John Selwyn took her 
in his arms--and folks stopped cheering and begun to 
cry. I cried myself, though 'twas years, mind you, 
afore I'd admit it. Ain't it funny how ashamed boys 
are of tears?
Was Persis Leigh beautiful?asked Anne. 
Well, I don't know that you'd call her beautiful 
exactly--I-- don't--know,said Captain Jim slowly. 
Somehow, you never got so far along as to wonder if 
she was handsome or not. It jest didn't matter. There 
was something so sweet and winsome about her that you 
had to love her, that was all. But she was pleasant to 
look at--big, clear, hazel eyes and heaps of glossy 
brown hair, and an English skin. John and her were 
married at our house that night at early 
candle-lighting; everybody from far and near was there 
to see it and we all brought them down here afterwards. 
Mistress Selwyn lighted the fire, and we went away and 
left them sitting here, jest as John had seen in that 
vision of his. A strange thing--a strange thing! But 
I've seen a turrible lot of strange things in my 
time.
Captain Jim shook his head sagely. 
It's a dear story,said Annefeeling that for once 
she had got enough romance to satisfy her. "How long 
did they live here?" 
Fifteen years. I ran off to sea soon after they were 
married, like the young scalawag I was. But every time 
I come back from a voyage I'd head for here, even 
before I went home, and tell Mistress Selwyn all about 
it. Fifteen happy years! They had a sort of talent 
for happiness, them two. Some folks are like that, if 
you've noticed. They COULDN'T be unhappy for long, no 
matter what happened. They quarrelled once or twice, 
for they was both high-sperrited. But Mistress Selwyn 
says to me once, says she, laughing in that pretty way 
of hers, `I felt dreadful when John and I quarrelled, 
but underneath it all I was very happy because I had 
such a nice husband to quarrel with and make it up 
with.' Then they moved to Charlottetown, and Ned 
Russell bought this house and brought his bride here. 
They were a gay young pair, as I remember them. Miss 
Elizabeth Russell was Alec's sister. She came to live 
with them a year or so later, and she was a creature of 
mirth, too. The walls of this house must be sorter 
SOAKED with laughing and good times. You're the third 
bride I've seen come here, Mistress Blythe--and the 
handsomest.
Captain Jim contrived to give his sunflower compliment 
the delicacy of a violetand Anne wore it proudly. 
She was looking her best that nightwith the bridal 
rose on her cheeks and the love-light in her eyes; even 
gruff old Doctor Dave gave her an approving glanceand 
told his wifeas they drove home togetherthat that 
red-headed wife of the boy's was something of a beauty. 
I must be getting back to the light,announced 
Captain Jim. "I've enj'yed this evening something 
tremenjus." 
 You must come often to see us,said Anne. 
I wonder if you'd give that invitation if you knew how 
likely I'll be to accept it,Captain Jim remarked 
whimsically. 
Which is another way of saying you wonder if I mean 
it,smiled Anne. "I do`cross my heart' as we used 
to say at school." 
Then I'll come. You're likely to be pestered with me 
at any hour. And I'll be proud to have you drop down 
and visit me now and then, too. Gin'rally I haven't 
anyone to talk to but the First Mate, bless his 
sociable heart. He's a mighty good listener, and has 
forgot more'n any MacAllister of them all ever knew, 
but he isn't much of a conversationalist. You're young 
and I'm old, but our souls are about the same age, I 
reckon. We both belong to the race that knows Joseph, 
as Cornelia Bryant would say.
The race that knows Joseph?puzzled Anne. 
Yes. Cornelia divides all the folks in the world into 
two kinds-- the race that knows Joseph and the race 
that don't. If a person sorter sees eye to eye with 
you, and has pretty much the same ideas about things, 
and the same taste in jokes--why, then he belongs to 
the race that knows Joseph.
Oh, I understand,exclaimed Annelight breaking in 
upon her. 
It's what I used to call--and still call in quotation 
marks `kindred spirits.'
Jest so--jest so,agreed Captain Jim. "We're it
whatever IT is. When you come in tonightMistress 
BlytheI says to myselfsays I`Yesshe's of the 
race that knows Joseph.' And mighty glad I wasfor 
if it wasn't so we couldn't have had any real 
satisfaction in each other's company. The race that 
knows Joseph is the salt of the airthI reckon." 
The moon had just risen when Anne and Gilbert went to 
the door with their guests. Four Winds Harbor was 
beginning to be a thing of dream and glamour and 
enchantment--a spellbound haven where no tempest might 
ever ravin. The Lombardies down the lanetall and 
sombre as the priestly forms of some mystic bandwere 
tipped with silver. 
Always liked Lombardies,said Captain Jimwaving a 
long arm at them. "They're the trees of princesses. 
They're out of fashion now. Folks complain that they 
die at the top and get ragged-looking. So they do--so 
they doif you don't risk your neck every spring 
climbing up a light ladder to trim them out. I always 
did it for Miss Elizabethso her Lombardies never got 
out-at-elbows. She was especially fond of them. She 
liked their dignity and stand-offishness. THEY don't 
hobnob with every TomDick and Harry. If it's maples 
for companyMistress Blytheit's Lombardies for 
society." 
What a beautiful night,said Mrs. Doctor Daveas 
she climbed into the Doctor's buggy. 
Most nights are beautiful,said Captain Jim. "But I 
'low that moonlight over Four Winds makes me sorter 
wonder what's left for heaven. The moon's a great 
friend of mineMistress Blythe. I've loved her ever 
since I can remember. When I was a little chap of 
eight I fell asleep in the garden one evening and 
wasn't missed. I woke up along in the night and I was 
most scared to death. What shadows and queer noises 
there was! I dursn't move. Jest crouched there 
quakingpoor small mite. Seemed 'sif there weren't 
anyone in the world but meself and it was mighty big. 
Then all at once I saw the moon looking down at me 
through the apple boughsjest like an old friend. I 
was comforted right off. Got up and walked to the 
house as brave as a lionlooking at her. Many's the 
night I've watched her from the deck of my vesselon 
seas far away from here. Why don't you folks tell me 
to take in the slack of my jaw and go home?" 
The laughter of the goodnights died away. Anne and 
Gilbert walked hand in hand around their garden. The 
brook that ran across the corner dimpled pellucidly in 
the shadows of the birches. The poppies along its 
banks were like shallow cups of moonlight. Flowers 
that had been planted by the hands of the 
schoolmaster's bride flung their sweetness on the 
shadowy airlike the beauty and blessing of sacred 
yesterdays. Anne paused in the gloom to gather a 
spray. 
I love to smell flowers in the dark,she said. "You 
get hold of their soul then. OhGilbertthis little 
house is all I've dreamed it. And I'm so glad that we 
are not the first who have kept bridal tryst here!" 
CHAPTER 8 
MISS CORNELIA BRYANT COMES TO CALL 
That September was a month of golden mists and purple 
hazes at Four Winds Harbor--a month of sun-steeped days 
and of nights that were swimming in moonlightor 
pulsating with stars. No storm marred itno rough 
wind blew. Anne and Gilbert put their nest in order
rambled on the shoressailed on the harbordrove 
about Four Winds and the Glenor through the ferny
sequestered roads of the woods around the harbor head; 
in shorthad such a honeymoon as any lovers in the 
world might have envied them. 
If life were to stop short just now it would still 
have been richly worth while, just for the sake of 
these past four weeks, wouldn't it?said Anne. "I 
don't suppose we will ever have four such perfect weeks 
again--but we've HAD them. Everything--windweather
folkshouse of dreams--has conspired to make our 
honeymoon delightful. There hasn't even been a rainy 
day since we came here." 
And we haven't quarrelled once,teased Gilbert. 
Well, `that's a pleasure all the greater for being 
deferred,'quoted Anne. "I'm so glad we decided to 
spend our honeymoon here. Our memories of it will 
always belong herein our house of dreamsinstead of 
being scattered about in strange places." 
There was a certain tang of romance and adventure in 
the atmosphere of their new home which Anne had never 
found in Avonlea. Therealthough she had lived in 
sight of the seait had not entered intimately into 
her life. In Four Winds it surrounded her and called 
to her constantly. From every window of her new home 
she saw some varying aspect of it. Its haunting murmur 
was ever in her ears. Vessels sailed up the harbor 
every day to the wharf at the Glenor sailed out 
again through the sunsetbound for ports that might be 
half way round the globe. Fishing boats went 
white-winged down the channel in the morningsand 
returned laden in the evenings. Sailors and 
fisher-folk travelled the redwinding harbor roads
light-hearted and content. There was always a certain 
sense of things going to happen--of adventures and 
farings-forth. The ways of Four Winds were less staid 
and settled and grooved than those of Avonlea; winds of 
change blew over them; the sea called ever to the 
dwellers on shoreand even those who might not answer 
its call felt the thrill and unrest and mystery and 
possibilities of it. 
I understand now why some men must go to sea,said 
Anne. "That desire which comes to us all at times--`to 
sail beyond the bourne of sunset'--must be very 
imperious when it is born in you. I don't wonder 
Captain Jim ran away because of it. I never see a ship 
sailing out of the channelor a gull soaring over the 
sand-barwithout wishing I were on board the ship or 
had wingsnot like a dove `to fly away and be at 
rest' but like a gullto sweep out into the very 
heart of a storm." 
You'll stay right here with me, Anne-girl,said 
Gilbert lazily. "I won't have you flying away from me 
into the hearts of storms." 
They were sitting on their red sand-stone doorstep in 
the late afternoon. Great tranquillities were all 
about them in land and sea and sky. Silvery gulls were 
soaring over them. The horizons were laced with long 
trails of frailpinkish clouds. The hushed air was 
threaded with a murmurous refrain of minstrel winds and 
waves. Pale asters were blowing in the sere and misty 
meadows between them and the harbor. 
Doctors who have to be up all night waiting on sick 
folk don't feel very adventurous, I suppose,Anne 
said indulgently. "If you had had a good sleep last 
nightGilbertyou'd be as ready as I am for a flight 
of imagination." 
I did good work last night, Anne,said Gilbert 
quietly. "Under GodI saved a life. This is the 
first time I could ever really claim that. In other 
cases I may have helped; butAnneif I had not stayed 
at Allonby's last night and fought death hand to hand
that woman would have died before morning. I tried an 
experiment that was certainly never tried in Four Winds 
before. I doubt if it was ever tried anywhere before 
outside of a hospital. It was a new thing in Kingsport 
hospital last winter. I could never have dared try it 
here if I had not been absolutely certain that there 
was no other chance. I risked it--and it succeeded. 
As a resulta good wife and mother is saved for long 
years of happiness and usefulness. As I drove home 
this morningwhile the sun was rising over the harbor
I thanked God that I had chosen the profession I did. 
I had fought a good fight and won--think of itAnne
WONagainst the Great Destroyer. It's what I dreamed 
of doing long ago when we talked together of what we 
wanted to do in life. That dream of mine came true 
this morning." 
Was that the only one of your dreams that has come 
true?asked Annewho knew perfectly well what the 
substance of his answer would bebut wanted to hear it 
again. 
YOU know, Anne-girl,said Gilbertsmiling into her 
eyes. At that moment there were certainly two 
perfectly happy people sitting on the doorstep of a 
little white house on the Four Winds Harbor shore. 
Presently Gilbert saidwith a change of toneDo I or 
do I not see a full-rigged ship sailing up our lane?
Anne looked and sprang up. 
That must be either Miss Cornelia Bryant or Mrs. Moore 
coming to call,she said. 
I'm going into the office, and if it is Miss Cornelia 
I warn you that I'll eavesdrop,said Gilbert. "From 
all I've heard regarding Miss Cornelia I conclude that 
her conversation will not be dullto say the least." 
It may be Mrs. Moore.
I don't think Mrs. Moore is built on those lines. I 
saw her working in her garden the other day, and, 
though I was too far away to see clearly, I thought she 
was rather slender. She doesn't seem very socially 
inclined when she has never called on you yet, although 
she's your nearest neighbor.
She can't be like Mrs. Lynde, after all, or curiosity 
would have brought her,said Anne. "This caller is
I thinkMiss Cornelia." 
Miss Cornelia it was; moreoverMiss Cornelia had not 
come to make any brief and fashionable wedding call. 
She had her work under her arm in a substantial parcel
and when Anne asked her to stay she promptly took off 
her capacious sun-hatwhich had been held on her head
despite irreverent September breezesby a tight 
elastic band under her hard little knob of fair hair. 
No hat pins for Miss Corneliaan it please ye! 
Elastic bands had been good enough for her mother and 
they were good enough for HER. She had a freshround
pink-and-white faceand jolly brown eyes. She did not 
look in the least like the traditional old maidand 
there was something in her expression which won Anne 
instantly. With her old instinctive quickness to 
discern kindred spirits she knew she was going to like 
Miss Corneliain spite of uncertain oddities of 
opinionand certain oddities of attire. 
Nobody but Miss Cornelia would have come to make a call 
arrayed in a striped blue-and-white apron and a wrapper 
of chocolate printwith a design of hugepink roses 
scattered over it. And nobody but Miss Cornelia could 
have looked dignified and suitably garbed in it. Had 
Miss Cornelia been entering a palace to call on a 
prince's brideshe would have been just as dignified 
and just as wholly mistress of the situation. She 
would have trailed her rose-spattered flounce over the 
marble floors just as unconcernedlyand she would have 
proceeded just as calmly to disabuse the mind of the 
princess of any idea that the possession of a mere man
be he prince or peasantwas anything to brag of. 
I've brought my work, Mrs. Blythe, dearie,she 
remarkedunrolling some dainty material. "I'm in a 
hurry to get this doneand there isn't any time to 
lose." 
Anne looked in some surprise at the white garment 
spread over Miss Cornelia's ample lap. It was 
certainly a baby's dressand it was most beautifully 
madewith tiny frills and tucks. Miss Cornelia 
adjusted her glasses and fell to embroidering with 
exquisite stitches. 
This is for Mrs. Fred Proctor up at the Glen,she 
announced. "She's expecting her eighth baby any day 
nowand not a stitch has she ready for it. The other 
seven have wore out all she made for the firstand 
she's never had time or strength or spirit to make any 
more. That woman is a martyrMrs. Blythebelieve ME. 
When she married Fred Proctor _I_ knew how it would 
turn out. He was one of your wickedfascinating men. 
After he got married he left off being fascinating and 
just kept on being wicked. He drinks and he neglects 
his family. Isn't that like a man? I don't know how 
Mrs. Proctor would ever keep her children decently 
clothed if her neighbors didn't help her out." 
As Anne was afterwards to learnMiss Cornelia was the 
only neighbor who troubled herself much about the 
decency of the young Proctors. 
When I heard this eighth baby was coming I decided to 
make some things for it,Miss Cornelia went on. 
This is the last and I want to finish it today.
It's certainly very pretty,said Anne. "I'll get my 
sewing and we'll have a little thimble party of two. 
You are a beautiful sewerMiss Bryant." 
Yes, I'm the best sewer in these parts,said Miss 
Cornelia in a matter-of-fact tone. "I ought to be! 
LordI've done more of it than if I'd had a hundred 
children of my ownbelieve ME! I s'pose I'm a fool
to be putting hand embroidery on this dress for an 
eighth baby. ButLordMrs. Blythedearieit isn't 
to blame for being the eighthand I kind of wished it 
to have one real pretty dressjust as if it WAS 
wanted. Nobody's wanting the poor mite--so I put some 
extra fuss on its little things just on that account." 
Any baby might be proud of that dress,said Anne
feeling still more strongly that she was going to like 
Miss Cornelia. 
I s'pose you've been thinking I was never coming to 
call on you,resumed Miss Cornelia. "But this is 
harvest monthyou knowand I've been busy--and a lot 
of extra hands hanging roundeating more'n they work
just like the men. I'd have come yesterdaybut I went 
to Mrs. Roderick MacAllister's funeral. At first I 
thought my head was aching so badly I couldn't enjoy 
myself if I did go. But she was a hundred years old
and I'd always promised myself that I'd go to her 
funeral." 
Was it a successful function?asked Annenoticing 
that the office door was ajar. 
What's that? Oh, yes, it was a tremendous funeral. 
She had a very large connection. There was over one 
hundred and twenty carriages in the procession. There 
was one or two funny things happened. I thought that 
die I would to see old Joe Bradshaw, who is an infidel 
and never darkens the door of a church, singing `Safe 
in the Arms of Jesus' with great gusto and fervor. He 
glories in singing-- that's why he never misses a 
funeral. Poor Mrs. Bradshaw didn't look much like 
singing--all wore out slaving. Old Joe starts out once 
in a while to buy her a present and brings home some 
new kind of farm machinery. Isn't that like a man? 
But what else would you expect of a man who never goes 
to church, even a Methodist one? I was real thankful 
to see you and the young Doctor in the Presbyterian 
church your first Sunday. No doctor for me who isn't a 
Presbyterian.
We were in the Methodist church last Sunday evening,
said Anne wickedly. 
Oh, I s'pose Dr. Blythe has to go to the Methodist 
church once in a while or he wouldn't get the Methodist 
practice.
We liked the sermon very much,declared Anne boldly. 
And I thought the Methodist minster's prayer was one 
of the most beautiful I ever heard.
Oh, I've no doubt he can pray. I never heard anyone 
make more beautiful prayers than old Simon Bentley, who 
was always drunk, or hoping to be, and the drunker he 
was the better he prayed.
The Methodist minister is very fine looking,said 
Annefor the benefit of the office door. 
Yes, he's quite ornamental,agreed Miss Cornelia. 
Oh, and VERY ladylike. And he thinks that every girl 
who looks at him falls in love with him--as if a 
Methodist minister, wandering about like any Jew, was 
such a prize! If you and the young doctor take MY 
advice, you won't have much to do with the Methodists. 
My motto is--if you ARE a Presbyterian, BE a 
Presbyterian.
Don't you think that Methodists go to heaven as well 
as Presbyterians?asked Anne smilelessly. 
That isn't for US to decide. It's in higher hands 
than ours,said Miss Cornelia solemnly. "But I ain't 
going to associate with them on earth whatever I may 
have to do in heaven. THIS Methodist minister isn't 
married. The last one they had wasand his wife was 
the silliestflightiest little thing I ever saw. I 
told her husband once that he should have waited till 
she was grown up before he married her. He said he 
wanted to have the training of her. Wasn't that like a 
man?" 
It's rather hard to decide just when people ARE grown 
up,laughed Anne. 
That's a true word, dearie. Some are grown up when 
they're born, and others ain't grown up when they're 
eighty, believe ME. That same Mrs. Roderick I was 
speaking of never grew up. She was as foolish when she 
was a hundred as when she was ten.
Perhaps that was why she lived so long,suggested 
Anne. 
Maybe 'twas. _I_'d rather live fifty sensible years 
than a hundred foolish ones.
But just think what a dull world it would be if 
everyone was sensible,pleaded Anne. 
Miss Cornelia disdained any skirmish of flippant 
epigram. 
Mrs. Roderick was a Milgrave, and the Milgraves never 
had much sense. Her nephew, Ebenezer Milgrave, used to 
be insane for years. He believed he was dead and used 
to rage at his wife because she wouldn't bury him. 
_I_'d a-done it.
Miss Cornelia looked so grimly determined that Anne 
could almost see her with a spade in her hand. 
Don't you know ANY good husbands, Miss Bryant?
Oh, yes, lots of them--over yonder,said Miss 
Corneliawaving her hand through the open window 
towards the little graveyard of the church across the 
harbor. 
But living--going about in the flesh?persisted 
Anne. 
Oh, there's a few, just to show that with God all 
things are possible,acknowledged Miss Cornelia 
reluctantly. "I don't deny that an odd man here and 
thereif he's caught young and trained up properand 
if his mother has spanked him well beforehandmay turn 
out a decent being. YOUR husbandnowisn't so bad
as men gofrom all I hear. I s'pose"--Miss Cornelia 
looked sharply at Anne over her glasses--"you think 
there's nobody like him in the world." 
There isn't,said Anne promptly. 
Ah, well, I heard another bride say that once,
sighed Miss Cornelia. "Jennie Dean thought when she 
married that there wasn't anybody like HER husband in 
the world. And she was right--there wasn't! And a 
good thingtoobelieve ME! He led her an awful 
life--and he was courting his second wife while Jennie 
was dying. 
Wasn't that like a man? HoweverI hope YOUR 
confidence will be better justifieddearie. The young 
doctor is taking real well. I was afraid at first he 
mightn'tfor folks hereabouts have always thought old 
Doctor Dave the only doctor in the world. Doctor Dave 
hadn't much tactto be sure--he was always talking of 
ropes in houses where someone had hanged himself. But 
folks forgot their hurt feelings when they had a pain 
in their stomachs. If he'd been a minister instead of 
a doctor they'd never have forgiven him. Soul-ache 
doesn't worry folks near as much as stomach-ache. 
Seeing as we're both Presbyterians and no Methodists 
aroundwill you tell me your candid opinion of OUR 
minister?" 
Why--really--I--well,hesitated Anne. 
Miss Cornelia nodded. 
Exactly. I agree with you, dearie. We made a mistake 
when we called HIM. His face just looks like one of 
those long, narrow stones in the graveyard, doesn't it? 
`Sacred to the memory' ought to be written on his 
forehead. I shall never forget the first sermon he 
preached after he came. It was on the subject of 
everyone doing what they were best fitted for--a very 
good subject, of course; but such illustrations as he 
used! He said, `If you had a cow and an apple tree, 
and if you tied the apple tree in your stable and 
planted the cow in your orchard, with her legs up, how 
much milk would you get from the apple tree, or how 
many apples from the cow?' Did you ever hear the like 
in your born days, dearie? I was so thankful there 
were no Methodists there that day--they'd never have 
been done hooting over it. But what I dislike most in 
him is his habit of agreeing with everybody, no matter 
what is said. If you said to him, `You're a 
scoundrel,' he'd say, with that smooth smile of his, 
`Yes, that's so.' A minister should have more 
backbone. The long and the short of it is, I consider 
him a reverend jackass. But, of course, this is just 
between you and me. When there are Methodists in 
hearing I praise him to the skies. Some folks think 
his wife dresses too gay, but _I_ say when she has to 
live with a face like that she needs something to cheer 
her up. You'll never hear ME condemning a woman for 
her dress. I'm only too thankful when her husband 
isn't too mean and miserly to allow it. Not that I 
bother much with dress myself. Women just dress to 
please the men, and I'd never stoop to THAT. I have 
had a real placid, comfortable life, dearie, and it's 
just because I never cared a cent what the men 
thought.
Why do you hate the men so, Miss Bryant?
Lord, dearie, I don't hate them. They aren't worth 
it. I just sort of despise them. I think I'll like 
YOUR husband if he keeps on as he has begun. But apart 
from him about the only men in the world I've much use 
for are the old doctor and Captain Jim.
Captain Jim is certainly splendid,agreed Anne 
cordially. 
Captain Jim is a good man, but he's kind of vexing in 
one way. You CAN'T make him mad. I've tried for 
twenty years and he just keeps on being placid. It 
does sort of rile me. And I s'pose the woman he 
should have married got a man who went into tantrums 
twice a day.
Who was she?
Oh, I don't know, dearie. I never remember of Captain 
Jim making up to anybody. He was edging on old as far 
as my memory goes. He's seventy-six, you know. I 
never heard any reason for his staying a bachelor, but 
there must be one, believe ME. He sailed all his life 
till five years ago, and there's no corner of the earth 
he hasn't poked his nose into. He and Elizabeth 
Russell were great cronies, all their lives, but they 
never had any notion of sweet-hearting. Elizabeth 
never married, though she had plenty of chances. She 
was a great beauty when she was young. The year the 
Prince of Wales came to the Island she was visiting her 
uncle in Charlottetown and he was a Government 
official, and so she got invited to the great ball. 
She was the prettiest girl there, and the Prince danced 
with her, and all the other women he didn't dance with 
were furious about it, because their social standing 
was higher than hers and they said he shouldn't have 
passed them over. Elizabeth was always very proud of 
that dance. Mean folks said that was why she never 
married--she couldn't put up with an ordinary man after 
dancing with a prince. But that wasn't so. She told 
me the reason once--it was because she had such a 
temper that she was afraid she couldn't live peaceably 
with any man. She HAD an awful temper--she used to 
have to go upstairs and bite pieces out of her bureau 
to keep it down by times. But I told her that wasn't 
any reason for not marrying if she wanted to. There's 
no reason why we should let the men have a monopoly of 
temper, is there, Mrs. Blythe, dearie?
I've a bit of temper myself,sighed Anne. 
It's well you have, dearie. You won't be half so 
likely to be trodden on, believe ME! My, how that 
golden glow of yours is blooming! Your garden looks 
fine. Poor Elizabeth always took such care of it.
I love it,said Anne. "I'm glad it's so full of 
old-fashioned flowers. Speaking of gardeningwe want 
to get a man to dig up that little lot beyond the fir 
grove and set it out with strawberry plants for us. 
Gilbert is so busy he will never get time for it this 
fall. Do you know anyone we can get?" 
Well, Henry Hammond up at the Glen goes out doing jobs 
like that. He'll do, maybe. He's always a heap more 
interested in his wages than in his work, just like a 
man, and he's so slow in the uptake that he stands 
still for five minutes before it dawns on him that he's 
stopped. His father threw a stump at him when he was 
small. 
Nice gentle missile, wasn't it? So like a man! 
Course, the boy never got over it. But he's the only 
one I can recommend at all. He painted my house for me 
last spring. It looks real nice now, don't you 
think?
Anne was saved by the clock striking five. 
Lord, is it that late?exclaimed Miss Cornelia. 
How time does slip by when you're enjoying yourself! 
Well, I must betake myself home.
No, indeed! You are going to stay and have tea with 
us,said Anne eagerly. 
Are you asking me because you think you ought to, or 
because you really want to?demanded Miss Cornelia. 
Because I really want to.
Then I'll stay. YOU belong to the race that knows 
Joseph.
I know we are going to be friends,said Annewith 
the smile that only they of the household of faith ever 
saw. 
Yes, we are, dearie. Thank goodness, we can choose 
our friends. We have to take our relatives as they 
are, and be thankful if there are no penitentiary birds 
among them. Not that I've many-- none nearer than 
second cousins. I'm a kind of lonely soul, Mrs. 
Blythe.
There was a wistful note in Miss Cornelia's voice. 
I wish you would call me Anne,exclaimed Anne 
impulsively. "It would seem more HOMEY. Everyone in 
Four Windsexcept my husbandcalls me Mrs. Blythe
and it makes me feel like a stranger. Do you know that 
your name is very near being the one I yearned after 
when I was a child. I hated `Anne' and I called myself 
`Cordelia' in imagination." 
I like Anne. It was my mother's name. Old-fashioned 
names are the best and sweetest in my opinion. If 
you're going to get tea you might send the young doctor 
to talk to me. He's been lying on the sofa in that 
office ever since I came, laughing fit to kill over 
what I've been saying.
How did you know?cried Annetoo aghast at this 
instance of Miss Cornelia's uncanny prescience to make 
a polite denial. 
I saw him sitting beside you when I came up the lane, 
and I know men's tricks,retorted Miss Cornelia. 
There, I've finished my little dress, dearie, and the 
eighth baby can come as soon as it pleases.
CHAPTER 9 
AN EVENING AT FOUR WINDS POINT 
It was late September when Anne and Gilbert were able 
to pay Four Winds light their promised visit. They had 
often planned to gobut something always occurred to 
prevent them. Captain Jim had "dropped in" several 
times at the little house. 
I don't stand on ceremony, Mistress Blythe,he told 
Anne. "It's a real pleasure to me to come hereand 
I'm not going to deny myself jest because you haven't 
got down to see me. There oughtn't to be no 
bargaining like that among the race that knows Joseph. 
I'll come when I canand you come when you canand so 
long's we have our pleasant little chat it don't matter 
a mite what roof's over us." 
Captain Jim took a great fancy to Gog and Magogwho 
were presiding over the destinies of the hearth in the 
little house with as much dignity and aplomb as they 
had done at Patty's Place. 
Aren't they the cutest little cusses?he would say 
delightedly; and he bade them greeting and farewell as 
gravely and invariably as he did his host and hostess. 
Captain Jim was not going to offend household deities 
by any lack of reverence and ceremony. 
You've made this little house just about perfect,he 
told Anne. "It never was so nice before. Mistress 
Selwyn had your taste and she did wonders; but folks in 
those days didn't have the pretty little curtains and 
pictures and nicknacks you have. As for Elizabethshe 
lived in the past. You've kinder brought the future 
into itso to speak. I'd be real happy even if we 
couldn't talk at allwhen I come here--jest to sit and 
look at you and your pictures and your flowers would be 
enough of a treat. It's beautiful--beautiful." 
Captain Jim was a passionate worshipper of beauty. 
Every lovely thing heard or seen gave him a deep
subtleinner joy that irradiated his life. He was 
quite keenly aware of his own lack of outward 
comeliness and lamented it. 
Folks say I'm good,he remarked whimsically upon one 
occasionbut I sometimes wish the Lord had made me 
only half as good and put the rest of it into looks. 
But there, I reckon He knew what He was about, as a 
good Captain should. Some of us have to be homely, or 
the purty ones--like Mistress Blythe here--wouldn't 
show up so well.
One evening Anne and Gilbert finally walked down to the 
Four Winds light. The day had begun sombrely in gray 
cloud and mistbut it had ended in a pomp of scarlet 
and gold. Over the western hills beyond the harbor 
were amber deeps and crystalline shallowswith the 
fire of sunset below. The north was a mackerel sky of 
littlefiery golden clouds. The red light flamed on 
the white sails of a vessel gliding down the channel
bound to a southern port in a land of palms. Beyond 
herit smote upon and incarnadined the shiningwhite
grassless faces of the sand dunes. To the rightit 
fell on the old house among the willows up the brook
and gave it for a fleeting space casements more 
splendid than those of an old cathedral. They glowed 
out of its quiet and grayness like the throbbing
blood-red thoughts of a vivid soul imprisoned in a dull 
husk of environment. 
That old house up the brook always seems so lonely,
said Anne. "I never see visitors there. Of course
its lane opens on the upper road--but I don't think 
there's much coming and going. It seems odd we've 
never met the Moores yetwhen they live within fifteen 
minutes' walk of us. I may have seen them in church
of coursebut if so I didn't know them. I'm sorry 
they are so unsociablewhen they are our only near 
neighbors." 
Evidently they don't belong to the race that knows 
Joseph,laughed Gilbert. "Have you ever found out 
who that girl was whom you thought so beautiful?" 
No. Somehow I have never remembered to ask about her. 
But I've never seen her anywhere, so I suppose she must 
have been a stranger. Oh, the sun has just 
vanished--and there's the light.
As the dusk deepenedthe great beacon cut swathes of 
light through itsweeping in a circle over the fields 
and the harborthe sandbar and the gulf. 
I feel as if it might catch me and whisk me leagues 
out to sea,said Anneas one drenched them with 
radiance; and she felt rather relieved when they got so 
near the Point that they were inside the range of those 
dazzlingrecurrent flashes. 
As they turned into the little lane that led across the 
fields to the Point they met a man coming out of it--a 
man of such extraordinary appearance that for a moment 
they both frankly stared. He was a decidedly 
fine-looking person-tallbroad-shoulderedwellfeatured
with a Roman nose and frank gray eyes; he was 
dressed in a prosperous farmer's Sunday best; in so far 
he might have been any inhabitant of Four Winds or the 
Glen. Butflowing over his breast nearly to his 
kneeswas a river of crinkly brown beard; and adown 
his backbeneath his commonplace felt hatwas a 
corresponding cascade of thickwavybrown hair. 
Anne,murmured Gilbertwhen they were out of 
earshotyou didn't put what Uncle Dave calls `a 
little of the Scott Act' in that lemonade you gave me 
just before we left home, did you?
No, I didn't,said Annestifling her laughterlest 
the retreating enigma should hear here. "Who in the 
world can he be?" 
I don't know; but if Captain Jim keeps apparitions 
like that down at this Point I'm going to carry cold 
iron in my pocket when I come here. He wasn't a 
sailor, or one might pardon his eccentricity of 
appearance; he must belong to the over-harbor clans. 
Uncle Dave says they have several freaks over there.
Uncle Dave is a little prejudiced, I think. You know 
all the over-harbor people who come to the Glen Church 
seem very nice. Oh, Gilbert, isn't this beautiful?
The Four Winds light was built on a spur of red 
sand-stone cliff jutting out into the gulf. On one 
sideacross the channelstretched the silvery sand 
shore of the bar; on the otherextended a long
curving beach of red cliffsrising steeply from the 
pebbled coves. It was a shore that knew the magic and 
mystery of storm and star. There is a great solitude 
about such a shore. The woods are never solitary-they 
are full of whisperingbeckoningfriendly life. 
But the sea is a mighty soulforever moaning of some 
greatunshareable sorrowwhich shuts it up into 
itself for all eternity. We can never pierce its 
infinite mystery--we may only wanderawed and 
spellboundon the outer fringe of it. The woods call 
to us with a hundred voicesbut the sea has one 
only--a mighty voice that drowns our souls in its 
majestic music. The woods are humanbut the sea is of 
the company of the archangels. 
Anne and Gilbert found Uncle Jim sitting on a bench 
outside the lighthouseputting the finishing touches 
to a wonderfulfull-riggedtoy schooner. He rose and 
welcomed them to his abode with the gentle
unconscious courtesy that became him so well. 
This has been a purty nice day all through, Mistress 
Blythe, and now, right at the last, it's brought its 
best. Would you like to sit down here outside a bit, 
while the light lasts? I've just finished this bit of 
a plaything for my little grand nephew, Joe, up at the 
Glen. After I promised to make it for him I was kinder 
sorry, for his mother was vexed. She's afraid he'll be 
wanting to go to sea later on and she doesn't want the 
notion encouraged in him. But what could I do, 
Mistress Blythe? I'd PROMISED him, and I think it's 
sorter real dastardly to break a promise you make to a 
child. Come, sit down. It won't take long to stay an 
hour.
The wind was off shoreand only broke the sea's 
surface into longsilvery ripplesand sent sheeny 
shadows flying out across itfrom every point and 
headlandlike transparent wings. The dusk was 
hanging a curtain of violet gloom over the sand dunes 
and the headlands where gulls were huddling. The sky 
was faintly filmed over with scarfs of silken vapor. 
Cloud fleets rode at anchor along the horizons. An 
evening star was watching over the bar. 
Isn't that a view worth looking at?said Captain 
Jimwith a lovingproprietary pride. "Nice and far 
from the market-placeain't it? No buying and selling 
and getting gain. You don't have to pay anything--all 
that sea and sky free--`without money and without 
price.' There's going to be a moonrise purty soon
too--I'm never tired of finding out what a moonrise can 
be over them rocks and sea and harbor. There's a 
surprise in it every time." 
They had their moonriseand watched its marvel and 
magic in a silence that asked nothing of the world or 
each other. Then they went up into the towerand 
Captain Jim showed and explained the mechanism of the 
great light. Finally they found themselves in the 
dining roomwhere a fire of driftwood was weaving 
flames of waveringelusivesea-born hues in the open 
fireplace. 
I put this fireplace in myself,remarked Captain 
Jim. "The Government don't give lighthouse keepers 
such luxuries. Look at the colors that wood makes. If 
you'd like some driftwood for your fireMistress 
BlytheI'll bring you up a load some day. Sit down. 
I'm going to make you a cup of tea." 
Captain Jim placed a chair for Annehaving first 
removed therefrom a hugeorange-colored cat and a 
newspaper. 
Get down, Matey. The sofa is your place. I must put 
this paper away safe till I can find time to finish the 
story in it. It's called A Mad Love. 'Tisn't my 
favorite brand of fiction, but I'm reading it jest to 
see how long she can spin it out. It's at the 
sixty-second chapter now, and the wedding ain't any 
nearer than when it begun, far's I can see. When 
little Joe comes I have to read him pirate yarns. 
Ain't it strange how innocent little creatures like 
children like the blood-thirstiest stories?
Like my lad Davy at home,said Anne. "He wants 
tales that reek with gore." 
Captain Jim's tea proved to be nectar. He was pleased 
as a child with Anne's complimentsbut he affected a 
fine indifference. 
The secret is I don't skimp the cream,he remarked 
airily. Captain Jim had never heard of Oliver Wendell 
Holmesbut he evidently agreed with that writer's 
dictum that "big heart never liked little cream pot." 
We met an odd-looking personage coming out of your 
lane,said Gilbert as they sipped. "Who was he?" 
Captain Jim grinned. 
That's Marshall Elliott--a mighty fine man with jest 
one streak of foolishness in him. I s'pose you 
wondered what his object was in turning himself into a 
sort of dime museum freak.
Is he a modern Nazarite or a Hebrew prophet left over 
from olden times?asked Anne. 
Neither of them. It's politics that's at the bottom 
of his freak. All those Elliotts and Crawfords and 
MacAllisters are dyed-in-the-wool politicians. They're 
born Grit or Tory, as the case may be, and they live 
Grit or Tory, and they die Grit or Tory; and what 
they're going to do in heaven, where there's probably 
no politics, is more than I can fathom. This Marshall 
Elliott was born a Grit. I'm a Grit myself in 
moderation, but there's no moderation about Marshall. 
Fifteen years ago there was a specially bitter general 
election. Marshall fought for his party tooth and 
nail. He was dead sure the Liberals would win--so 
sure that he got up at a public meeting and vowed that 
he wouldn't shave his face or cut his hair until the 
Grits were in power. Well, they didn't go in--and 
they've never got in yet--and you saw the result today 
for yourselves. Marshall stuck to his word.
What does his wife think of it?asked Anne. 
He's a bachelor. But if he had a wife I reckon she 
couldn't make him break that vow. That family of 
Elliotts has always been more stubborn than natteral. 
Marshall's brother Alexander had a dog he set great 
store by, and when it died the man actilly wanted to 
have it buried in the graveyard, `along with the other 
Christians,' he said. Course, he wasn't allowed to; so 
he buried it just outside the graveyard fence, and 
never darkened the church door again. But Sundays he'd 
drive his family to church and sit by that dog's grave 
and read his Bible all the time service was going on. 
They say when he was dying he asked his wife to bury 
him beside the dog; she was a meek little soul but she 
fired up at THAT. She said SHE wasn't going to be 
buried beside no dog, and if he'd rather have his last 
resting place beside the dog than beside her, jest to 
say so. Alexander Elliott was a stubborn mule, but he 
was fond of his wife, so he give in and said, `Well, 
durn it, bury me where you please. But when Gabriel's 
trump blows I expect my dog to rise with the rest of 
us, for he had as much soul as any durned Elliott or 
Crawford or MacAllister that ever strutted.' Them was 
HIS parting words. As for Marshall, we're all used to 
him, but he must strike strangers as right down 
peculiar- looking. I've known him ever since he was 
ten--he's about fifty now--and I like him. Him and me 
was out cod-fishing today. That's about all I'm good 
for now--catching trout and cod occasional. But 
'tweren't always so--not by no manner of means. I used 
to do other things, as you'd admit if you saw my 
life-book.
Anne was just going to ask what his life-book was when 
the First Mate created a diversion by springing upon 
Captain Jim's knee. He was a gorgeous beastiewith a 
face as round as a full moonvivid green eyesand 
immensewhitedouble paws. Captain Jim stroked his 
velvet back gently. 
I never fancied cats much till I found the First 
Mate,he remarkedto the accompaniment of the Mate's 
tremendous purrs. "I saved his lifeand when you've 
saved a creature's life you're bound to love it. It's 
next thing to giving life. There's some turrible 
thoughtless people in the worldMistress Blythe. Some 
of them city folks who have summer homes over the 
harbor are so thoughtless that they're cruel. It's the 
worst kind of cruelty--the thoughtless kind. You can't 
cope with it. They keep cats there in the summerand 
feed and pet 'emand doll 'em up with ribbons and 
collars. And then in the fall they go off and leave 
'em to starve or freeze. It makes my blood boil
Mistress Blythe. One day last winter I found a poor 
old mother cat dead on the shorelying against the 
skin-and-bone bodies of her three little kittens. 
She'd died trying to shelter 'em. She had her poor 
stiff paws around 'em. MasterI cried. Then I swore. 
Then I carried them poor little kittens home and fed 
'em up and found good homes for 'em. I knew the woman 
who left the cat and when she come back this summer I 
jest went over the harbor and told her my opinion of 
her. It was rank meddlingbut I do love meddling in a 
good cause." 
How did she take it?asked Gilbert. 
Cried and said she `didn't think.' I says to her, 
says I, `Do you s'pose that'll be held for a good 
excuse in the day of Jedgment, when you'll have to 
account for that poor old mother's life? The Lord'll 
ask you what He give you your brains for if it wasn't 
to think, I reckon.' I don't fancy she'll leave cats 
to starve another time.
Was the First Mate one of the forsaken?asked Anne
making advances to him which were responded to 
graciouslyif condescendingly. 
Yes. I found HIM one bitter cold day in winter, 
caught in the branches of a tree by his durn-fool 
ribbon collar. He was almost starving. If you could 
have seen his eyes, Mistress Blythe! He was nothing 
but a kitten, and he'd got his living somehow since 
he'd been left until he got hung up. When I loosed him 
he gave my hand a pitiful swipe with his little red 
tongue. He wasn't the able seaman you see now. He was 
meek as Moses. That was nine years ago. His life has 
been long in the land for a cat. He's a good old pal, 
the First Mate is.
I should have expected you to have a dog,said 
Gilbert. 
Captain Jim shook his head. 
I had a dog once. I thought so much of him that when 
he died I couldn't bear the thought of getting another 
in his place. He was a FRIEND--you understand, 
Mistress Blythe? Matey's only a pal. I'm fond of 
Matey--all the fonder on account of the spice of 
devilment that's in him--like there is in all cats. 
But I LOVED my dog. I always had a sneaking sympathy 
for Alexander Elliott about HIS dog. There isn't any 
devil in a good dog. That's why they're more lovable 
than cats, I reckon. But I'm darned if they're as 
interesting. Here I am, talking too much. Why don't 
you check me? When I do get a chance to talk to 
anyone I run on turrible. If you've done your tea I've 
a few little things you might like to look at--picked 
'em up in the queer corners I used to be poking my nose 
into.
Captain Jim's "few little things" turned out to be a 
most interesting collection of curioshideousquaint 
and beautiful. And almost every one had some striking 
story attached to it. 
Anne never forgot the delight with which she listened 
to those old tales that moonlit evening by that 
enchanted driftwood firewhile the silver sea called 
to them through the open window and sobbed against the 
rocks below them. 
Captain Jim never said a boastful wordbut it was 
impossible to help seeing what a hero the man had 
been--bravetrueresourcefulunselfish. He sat 
there in his little room and made those things live 
again for his hearers. By a lift of the eyebrowa 
twist of the lipa gesturea wordhe painted a whole 
scene or character so that they saw it as it was. 
Some of Captain Jim's adventures had such a marvellous 
edge that Anne and Gilbert secretly wondered if he were 
not drawing a rather long bow at their credulous 
expense. But in thisas they found laterthey did 
him injustice. His tales were all literally true. 
Captain Jim had the gift of the born storyteller
whereby "unhappyfar-off things" can be brought 
vividly before the hearer in all their pristine 
poignancy. 
Anne and Gilbert laughed and shivered over his tales
and once Anne found herself crying. Captain Jim 
surveyed her tears with pleasure shining from his face. 
I like to see folks cry that way,he remarked. 
It's a compliment. But I can't do justice to the 
things I've seen or helped to do. I've 'em all jotted 
down in my life-book, but I haven't got the knack of 
writing them out properly. If I could hit on jest the 
right words and string 'em together proper on paper I 
could make a great book. It would beat A Mad Love 
holler, and I believe Joe'd like it as well as the 
pirate yarns. Yes, I've had some adventures in my 
time; and, do you know, Mistress Blythe, I still lust 
after 'em. Yes, old and useless as I be, there's an 
awful longing sweeps over me at times to sail 
out--out--out there--forever and ever.
Like Ulysses, you would
 `Sail beyond the sunset and the baths Of all 
the western stars until you die,'
said Anne dreamily. 
Ulysses? I've read of him. Yes, that's just how I 
feel--jest how all us old sailors feel, I reckon. I'll 
die on land after all, I s'pose. Well, what is to be 
will be. There was old William Ford at the Glen who 
never went on the water in his life, 'cause he was 
afraid of being drowned. A fortune-teller had 
predicted he would be. And one day he fainted and fell 
with his face in the barn trough and was drowned. Must 
you go? Well, come soon and come often. The doctor is 
to do the talking next time. He knows a heap of things 
I want to find out. I'm sorter lonesome here by times. 
It's been worse since Elizabeth Russell died. Her and 
me was such cronies.
Captain Jim spoke with the pathos of the agedwho see 
their old friends slipping from them one by 
one--friends whose place can never be quite filled by 
those of a younger generationeven of the race that 
knows Joseph. Anne and Gilbert promised to come soon 
and often. 
He's a rare old fellow, isn't he?said Gilbertas 
they walked home. 
Somehow, I can't reconcile his simple, kindly 
personality with the wild, adventurous life he has 
lived,mused Anne. 
You wouldn't find it so hard if you had seen him the 
other day down at the fishing village. One of the men 
of Peter Gautier's boat made a nasty remark about some 
girl along the shore. Captain Jim fairly scorched the 
wretched fellow with the lightning of his eyes. He 
seemed a man transformed. He didn't say much--but the 
way he said it! You'd have thought it would strip the 
flesh from the fellow's bones. I understand that 
Captain Jim will never allow a word against any woman 
to be said in his presence.
I wonder why he never married,said Anne. "He 
should have sons with their ships at sea nowand 
grandchildren climbing over him to hear his 
stories--he's that kind of a man. Insteadhe has 
nothing but a magnificent cat." 
But Anne was mistaken. Captain Jim had more than that. 
He had a memory. 
CHAPTER 10 
LESLIE MOORE 
I'm going for a walk to the outside shore tonight,
Anne told Gog and Magog one October evening. There was 
no one else to tellfor Gilbert had gone over the 
harbor. Anne had her little domain in the speckless 
order one would expect of anyone brought up by Marilla 
Cuthbertand felt that she could gad shoreward with a 
clear conscience. Many and delightful had been her 
shore ramblessometimes with Gilbertsometimes with 
Captain Jimsometimes alone with her own thoughts and 
newpoignantly-sweet dreams that were beginning to 
span life with their rainbows. She loved the gentle
misty harbor shore and the silverywind-haunted sand 
shorebut best of all she loved the rock shorewith 
its cliffs and caves and piles of surf-worn boulders
and its coves where the pebbles glittered under the 
pools; and it was to this shore she hied herself 
tonight. 
There had been an autumn storm of wind and rain
lasting for three days. Thunderous had been the crash 
of billows on the rockswild the white spray and spume 
that blew over the bartroubled and misty and 
tempest-torn the erstwhile blue peace of Four Winds 
Harbor. Now it was overand the shore lay 
clean-washed after the storm; not a wind stirredbut 
there was still a fine surf ondashing on sand and 
rock in a splendid white turmoil--the only restless 
thing in the greatpervading stillness and peace. 
Oh, this is a moment worth living through weeks of 
storm and stress for,Anne exclaimeddelightedly 
sending her far gaze across the tossing waters from the 
top of the cliff where she stood. Presently she 
scrambled down the steep path to the little cove below
where she seemed shut in with rocks and sea and sky. 
I'm going to dance and sing,she said. "There's no 
one here to see me--the seagulls won't carry tales of 
the matter. I may be as crazy as I like." 
She caught up her skirt and pirouetted along the hard 
strip of sand just out of reach of the waves that 
almost lapped her feet with their spent foam. Whirling 
round and roundlaughing like a childshe reached the 
little headland that ran out to the east of the cove; 
then she stopped suddenlyblushing crimson; she was 
not alone; there had been a witness to her dance and 
laughter. 
The girl of the golden hair and sea-blue eyes was 
sitting on a boulder of the headlandhalf-hidden by a 
jutting rock. She was looking straight at Anne with a 
strange expression--part wonderpart sympathy
part--could it be?--envy. She was bare-headedand her 
splendid hairmore than ever like Browning's "gorgeous 
snake was bound about her head with a crimson 
ribbon. She wore a dress of some dark material, very 
plainly made; but swathed about her waist, outlining 
its fine curves, was a vivid girdle of red silk. Her 
hands, clasped over her knee, were brown and somewhat 
work- hardened; but the skin of her throat and cheeks 
was as white as cream. A flying gleam of sunset broke 
through a low-lying western cloud and fell across her 
hair. For a moment she seemed the spirit of the sea 
personified--all its mystery, all its passion, all its 
elusive charm. 
You--you must think me crazy stammered Anne, trying 
to recover her self-possession. To be seen by this 
stately girl in such an abandon of childishness--she, 
Mrs. Dr. Blythe, with all the dignity of the matron to 
keep up--it was too bad! 
No said the girl, I don't." 
She said nothing more; her voice was expressionless; 
her manner slightly repellent; but there was something 
in her eyes--eager yet shydefiant yet pleading--which 
turned Anne from her purpose of walking away. Instead
she sat down on the boulder beside the girl. 
Let's introduce ourselves,she saidwith the smile 
that had never yet failed to win confidence and 
friendliness. "I am Mrs. Blythe--and I live in that 
little white house up the harbor shore." 
Yes, I know,said the girl. "I am Leslie 
Moore--Mrs. Dick Moore she added stiffly. 
Anne was silent for a moment from sheer amazement. It 
had not occurred to her that this girl was 
married--there seemed nothing of the wife about her. 
And that she should be the neighbor whom Anne had 
pictured as a commonplace Four Winds housewife! Anne 
could not quickly adjust her mental focus to this 
astonishing change. 
Then--then you live in that gray house up the brook 
she stammered. 
Yes. I should have gone over to call on you long 
ago said the other. She did not offer any 
explanation or excuse for not having gone. 
I wish you WOULD come said Anne, recovering herself 
somewhat. We're such near neighbors we ought to be 
friends. That is the sole fault of Four Winds--there 
aren't quite enough neighbors. Otherwise it is 
perfection." 
You like it?
LIKE it! I love it. It is the most beautiful place I 
ever saw.
I've never seen many places,said Leslie Moore
slowlybut I've always thought it was very lovely 
here. I--I love it, too.
She spokeas she lookedshylyyet eagerly. Anne had 
an odd impression that this strange girl--the word 
girlwould persist-- could say a good deal if she 
chose. 
I often come to the shore,she added. 
So do I,said Anne. "It's a wonder we haven't met 
here before." 
Probably you come earlier in the evening than I do. 
It is generally late--almost dark--when I come. And I 
love to come just after a storm--like this. I don't 
like the sea so well when it's calm and quiet. I like 
the struggle--and the crash--and the noise.
I love it in all its moods,declared Anne. "The sea 
at Four Winds is to me what Lover's Lane was at home. 
Tonight it seemed so free--so untamed--something broke 
loose in metooout of sympathy. That was why I 
danced along the shore in that wild way. I didn't 
suppose anybody was lookingof course. If Miss 
Cornelia Bryant had seen me she would have forboded a 
gloomy prospect for poor young Dr. Blythe." 
You know Miss Cornelia?said Leslielaughing. She 
had an exquisite laugh; it bubbled up suddenly and 
unexpectedly with something of the delicious quality of 
a baby's. Anne laughedtoo. 
Oh, yes. She has been down to my house of dreams 
several times.
Your house of dreams?
Oh, that's a dear, foolish little name Gilbert and I 
have for our home. We just call it that between 
ourselves. It slipped out before I thought.
So Miss Russell's little white house is YOUR house of 
dreams,said Leslie wonderingly. "_I_ had a house of 
dreams once--but it was a palace she added, with a 
laugh, the sweetness of which was marred by a little 
note of derision. 
OhI once dreamed of a palacetoo said Anne. I 
suppose all girls do. And then we settle down 
contentedly in eight-room houses that seem to fulfill 
all the desires of our hearts--because our prince is 
there. YOU should have had your palace really
though--you are so beautiful. You MUST let me say 
it--it has to be said--I'm nearly bursting with 
admiration. You are the loveliest thing I ever saw
Mrs. Moore." 
If we are to be friends you must call me Leslie,
said the other with an odd passion. 
Of course I will. And MY friends call me Anne.
I suppose I am beautiful,Leslie went onlooking 
stormily out to sea. "I hate my beauty. I wish I had 
always been as brown and plain as the brownest and 
plainest girl at the fishing village over there. 
Wellwhat do you think of Miss Cornelia?" 
The abrupt change of subject shut the door on any 
further confidences. 
Miss Cornelia is a darling, isn't she?said Anne. 
Gilbert and I were invited to her house to a state tea 
last week. You've heard of groaning tables.
I seem to recall seeing the expression in the 
newspaper reports of weddings,said Lesliesmiling. 
Well, Miss Cornelia's groaned--at least, it 
creaked--positively. You couldn't have believed she 
would have cooked so much for two ordinary people. She 
had every kind of pie you could name, I think--except 
lemon pie. She said she had taken the prize for lemon 
pies at the Charlottetown Exhibition ten years ago and 
had never made any since for fear of losing her 
reputation for them.
Were you able to eat enough pie to please her?
_I_ wasn't. Gilbert won her heart by eating--I won't 
tell you how much. She said she never knew a man who 
didn't like pie better than his Bible. Do you know, I 
love Miss Cornelia.
So do I,said Leslie. "She is the best friend I 
have in the world." 
Anne wondered secretly whyif this were soMiss 
Cornelia had never mentioned Mrs. Dick Moore to her. 
Miss Cornelia had certainly talked freely about every 
other individual in or near Four Winds. 
Isn't that beautiful?said Leslieafter a brief 
silencepointing to the exquisite effect of a shaft of 
light falling through a cleft in the rock behind them
across a dark green pool at its base. "If I had come 
here--and seen nothing but just that--I would go home 
satisfied." 
The effects of light and shadow all along these shores 
are wonderful,agreed Anne. "My little sewing room 
looks out on the harborand I sit at its window and 
feast my eyes. The colors and shadows are never the 
same two minutes together." 
And you are never lonely?asked Leslie abruptly. 
Never-- when you are alone?
No. I don't think I've ever been really lonely in my 
life,answered Anne. "Even when I'm alone I have 
real good company-- dreams and imaginations and 
pretendings. I LIKE to be alone now and thenjust to 
think over things and TASTE them. But I love 
friendship-- and nicejolly little times with people. 
OhWON'T you come to see me--often? Please do. I 
believe Anne added, laughing, that you'd like me if 
you knew me." 
I wonder if YOU would like ME,said Leslie 
seriously. She was not fishing for a compliment. She 
looked out across the waves that were beginning to be 
garlanded with blossoms of moonlit foamand her eyes 
filled with shadows. 
I'm sure I would,said Anne. "And please don't 
think I'm utterly irresponsible because you saw me 
dancing on the shore at sunset. No doubt I shall be 
dignified after a time. You seeI haven't been 
married very long. I feel like a girland sometimes 
like a childyet." 
I have been married twelve years,said Leslie. 
Here was another unbelievable thing. 
Why, you can't be as old as I am!exclaimed Anne. 
You must have been a child when you were married.
I was sixteen,said Leslierisingand picking up 
the cap and jacket lying beside her. "I am 
twenty-eight now. WellI must go back." 
So must I. Gilbert will probably be home. But I'm so 
glad we both came to the shore tonight and met each 
other.
Leslie said nothingand Anne was a little chilled. 
She had offered friendship frankly but it had not been 
accepted very graciouslyif it had not been absolutely 
repelled. In silence they climbed the cliffs and 
walked across a pasture-field of which the feathery
bleachedwild grasses were like a carpet of creamy 
velvet in the moonlight. When they reached the shore 
lane Leslie turned. 
I go this way, Mrs. Blythe. You will come over and 
see me some time, won't you?
Anne felt as if the invitation had been thrown at her. 
She got the impression that Leslie Moore gave it 
reluctantly. 
I will come if you really want me to,she said a 
little coldly. 
Oh, I do--I do,exclaimed Lesliewith an eagerness 
which seemed to burst forth and beat down some 
restraint that had been imposed on it. 
Then I'll come. Good-night--Leslie.
Good-night, Mrs. Blythe.
Anne walked home in a brown study and poured out her 
tale to Gilbert. 
So Mrs. Dick Moore isn't one of the race that knows 
Joseph?said Gilbert teasingly. 
No--o--o, not exactly. And yet--I think she WAS one 
of them once, but has gone or got into exile,said 
Anne musingly. "She is certainly very different from 
the other women about here. You can't talk about eggs 
and butter to HER. To think I've been imagining her a 
second Mrs. Rachel Lynde! Have you ever seen Dick 
MooreGilbert?" 
No. I've seen several men working about the fields of 
the farm, but I don't know which was Moore.
She never mentioned him. I KNOW she isn't happy.
From what you tell me I suppose she was married before 
she was old enough to know her own mind or heart, and 
found out too late that she had made a mistake. It's a 
common tragedy enough, Anne. 
A fine woman would have made the best of it. Mrs. 
Moore has evidently let it make her bitter and 
resentful.
Don't let us judge her till we know,pleaded Anne. 
I don't believe her case is so ordinary. You will 
understand her fascination when you meet her, Gilbert. 
It is a thing quite apart from her beauty. I feel that 
she possesses a rich nature, into which a friend might 
enter as into a kingdom; but for some reason she bars 
every one out and shuts all her possibilities up in 
herself, so that they cannot develop and blossom. 
There, I've been struggling to define her to myself 
ever since I left her, and that is the nearest I can 
get to it. I'm going to ask Miss Cornelia about her.
CHAPTER 11 
THE STORY OF LESLIE MOORE 
Yes, the eighth baby arrived a fortnight ago,said 
Miss Corneliafrom a rocker before the fire of the 
little house one chilly October afternoon. "It's a 
girl. Fred was ranting mad--said he wanted a 
boy--when the truth is he didn't want it at all. If it 
had been a boy he'd have ranted because it wasn't a 
girl. They had four girls and three boys beforeso I 
can't see that it made much difference what this one 
wasbut of course he'd have to be cantankerousjust 
like a man. The baby is real prettydressed up in its 
nice little clothes. It has black eyes and the 
dearesttiny hands." 
I must go and see it. I just love babies,said 
Annesmiling to herself over a thought too dear and 
sacred to be put into words. 
I don't say but what they're nice,admitted Miss 
Cornelia. "But some folks seem to have more than they 
really needbelieve ME. My poor cousin Flora up at 
the Glen had elevenand such a slave as she is! Her 
husband suicided three years ago. Just like a man!" 
What made him do that?asked Annerather shocked. 
Couldn't get his way over something, so he jumped into 
the well . A good riddance! He was a born tyrant. 
But of course it spoiled the well. Flora could never 
abide the thought of using it again, poor thing! So 
she had another dug and a frightful expense it was, and 
the water as hard as nails. If he HAD to drown himself 
there was plenty of water in the harbor, wasn't there? 
I've no patience with a man like that. We've only had 
two suicides in Four Winds in my recollection. The 
other was Frank West--Leslie Moore's father. By the 
way, has Leslie ever been over to call on you yet?
No, but I met her on the shore a few nights ago and we 
scraped an acquaintance,said Annepricking up her 
ears. 
Miss Cornelia nodded. 
I'm glad, dearie. I was hoping you'd foregather with 
her. What do you think of her?
I thought her very beautiful.
Oh, of course. There was never anybody about Four 
Winds could touch her for looks. Did you ever see her 
hair? It reaches to her feet when she lets it down. 
But I meant how did you like her?
I think I could like her very much if she'd let me,
said Anne slowly. 
But she wouldn't let you--she pushed you off and kept 
you at arm's length. Poor Leslie! You wouldn't be 
much surprised if you knew what her life has been. 
It's been a tragedy--a tragedy!repeated Miss 
Cornelia emphatically. 
I wish you would tell me all about her--that is, if 
you can do so without betraying any confidence.
Lord, dearie, everybody in Four Winds knows poor 
Leslie's story. It's no secret--the OUTSIDE, that is. 
Nobody knows the INSIDE but Leslie herself, and she 
doesn't take folks into her confidence. I'm about the 
best friend she has on earth, I reckon, and she's never 
uttered a word of complaint to me. Have you ever seen 
Dick Moore?
No.
Well, I may as well begin at the beginning and tell 
you everything straight through, so you'll understand 
it. As I said, Leslie's father was Frank West. He was 
clever and shiftless--just like a man. Oh, he had 
heaps of brains--and much good they did him! He 
started to go to college, and he went for two years, 
and then his health broke down. The Wests were all 
inclined to be consumptive. So Frank came home and 
started farming. He married Rose Elliott from over 
harbor. Rose was reckoned the beauty of Four 
Winds--Leslie takes her looks from her mother, but she 
has ten times the spirit and go that Rose had, and a 
far better figure. Now you know, Anne, I always take 
the ground that us women ought to stand by each other. 
We've got enough to endure at the hands of the men, the 
Lord knows, so I hold we hadn't ought to clapper-claw 
one another, and it isn't often you'll find me running 
down another woman. But I never had much use for Rose 
Elliott. She was spoiled to begin with, believe ME, 
and she was nothing but a lazy, selfish, whining 
creature. Frank was no hand to work, so they were 
poor as Job's turkey. Poor! They lived on potatoes 
and point, believe ME. They had two children--Leslie 
and Kenneth. Leslie had her mother's looks and her 
father's brains, and something she didn't get from 
either of them. She took after her Grandmother West--a 
splendid old lady. She was the brightest, friendliest, 
merriest thing when she was a child, Anne. Everybody 
liked her. She was her father's favorite and she was 
awful fond of him. They were `chums,' as she used to 
say. She couldn't see any of his faults--and he WAS a 
taking sort of man in some ways. 
Wellwhen Leslie was twelve years oldthe first 
dreadful thing happened. She worshipped little 
Kenneth--he was four years younger than herand he WAS 
a dear little chap. And he was killed one day--fell 
off a big load of hay just as it was going into the 
barnand the wheel went right over his little body and 
crushed the life out of it. And mind youAnneLeslie 
saw it. She was looking down from the loft. She gave 
one screech--the hired man said he never heard such a 
sound in all his life--he said it would ring in his 
ears till Gabriel's trump drove it out. But she never 
screeched or cried again about it. She jumped from the 
loft onto the load and from the load to the floorand 
caught up the little bleedingwarmdead body
Anne--they had to tear it from her before she would let 
it go. They sent for me--I can't talk of it." 
Miss Cornelia wiped the tears from her kindly brown 
eyes and sewed in bitter silence for a few minutes. 
Well,she resumedit was all over--they buried 
little Kenneth in that graveyard over the harbor, and 
after a while Leslie went back to her school and her 
studies. She never mentioned Kenneth's name--I've 
never heard it cross her lips from that day to this. I 
reckon that old hurt still aches and burns at times; 
but she was only a child and time is real kind to 
children, Anne, dearie. After a while she began to 
laugh again--she had the prettiest laugh. You don't 
often hear it now.
I heard it once the other night,said Anne. "It IS 
a beautiful laugh." 
Frank West began to go down after Kenneth's death. He 
wasn't strong and it was a shock to him, because he was 
real fond of the child, though, as I've said, Leslie 
was his favorite. He got mopy and melancholy, and 
couldn't or wouldn't work. And one day, when Leslie 
was fourteen years of age, he hanged himself--and in 
the parlor, too, mind you, Anne, right in the middle of 
the parlor from the lamp hook in the ceiling. Wasn't 
that like a man? It was the anniversary of his 
wedding day, too. Nice, tasty time to pick for it, 
wasn't it? And, of course, that poor Leslie had to be 
the one to find him. She went into the parlor that 
morning, singing, with some fresh flowers for the 
vases, and there she saw her father hanging from the 
ceiling, his face as black as a coal. It was something 
awful, believe ME!
Oh, how horrible!said Anneshuddering. "The poor
poor child!" 
Leslie didn't cry at her father's funeral any more 
then she had cried at Kenneth's. Rose whooped and 
howled for two, however, and Leslie had all she could 
do trying to calm and comfort her mother. I was 
disgusted with Rose and so was everyone else, but 
Leslie never got out of patience. She loved her 
mother. Leslie is clannish--her own could never do 
wrong in her eyes. Well, they buried Frank West beside 
Kenneth, and Rose put up a great big monument to him. 
It was bigger than his character, believe ME! Anyhow, 
it was bigger than Rose could afford, for the farm was 
mortgaged for more than its value. But not long after 
Leslie's old grandmother West died and she left Leslie 
a little money--enough to give her a year at Queen's 
Academy. Leslie had made up her mind to pass for a 
teacher if she could, and then earn enough to put 
herself through Redmond College. That had been her 
father's pet scheme--he wanted her to have what he had 
lost. Leslie was full of ambition and her head was 
chock full of brains. She went to Queen's, and she 
took two years' work in one year and got her First; 
and when she came home she got the Glen school. She 
was so happy and hopeful and full of life and 
eagerness. When I think of what she was then and what 
she is now, I say--drat the men!
Miss Cornelia snipped her thread off as viciously as 
ifNero-likeshe was severing the neck of mankind by 
the stroke. 
Dick Moore came into her life that summer. His 
father, Abner Moore, kept store at the Glen, but Dick 
had a sea-going streak in him from his mother; he used 
to sail in summer and clerk in his father's store in 
winter. He was a big, handsome fellow, with a little 
ugly soul. He was always wanting something till he got 
it, and then he stopped wanting it--just like a man. 
Oh, he didn't growl at the weather when it was fine, 
and he was mostly real pleasant and agreeable when 
everything went right. But he drank a good deal, and 
there were some nasty stories told of him and a girl 
down at the fishing village. He wasn't fit for Leslie 
to wipe her feet on, that's the long and short of it. 
And he was a Methodist! But he was clean mad about 
her--because of her good looks in the first place, and 
because she wouldn't have anything to say to him in the 
second. He vowed he'd have her--and he got her!
How did he bring it about?
Oh, it was an iniquitous thing! I'll never forgive 
Rose West. You see, dearie, Abner Moore held the 
mortgage on the West farm, and the interest was overdue 
some years, and Dick just went and told Mrs. West that 
if Leslie wouldn't marry him he'd get his father to 
foreclose the mortgage. Rose carried on 
terrible--fainted and wept, and pleaded with Leslie not 
to let her be turned out of her home. She said it 
would break her heart to leave the home she'd come to 
as a bride. I wouldn't have blamed her for feeling 
dreadful bad over it--but you wouldn't have thought 
she'd be so selfish as to sacrifice her own flesh and 
blood because of it, would you? Well, she was. 
And Leslie gave in--she loved her mother so much she 
would have done anything to save her pain. She married 
Dick Moore. None of us knew why at the time. It 
wasn't till long afterward that I found out how her 
mother had worried her into it. I was sure there was 
something wrong, though, because I knew how she had 
snubbed him time and again, and it wasn't like Leslie 
to turn face--about like that. Besides, I knew that 
Dick Moore wasn't the kind of man Leslie could ever 
fancy, in spite of his good looks and dashing ways. Of 
course, there was no wedding, but Rose asked me to go 
and see them married. I went, but I was sorry I did. 
I'd seen Leslie's face at her brother's funeral and at 
her father's funeral--and now it seemed to me I was 
seeing it at her own funeral. But Rose was smiling as 
a basket of chips, believe ME! 
Leslie and Dick settled down on the West place--Rose 
couldn't bear to part with her dear daughter!--and 
lived there for the winter. In the spring Rose took 
pneumonia and died--a year too late! Leslie was 
heart-broken enough over it. Isn't it terrible the way 
some unworthy folks are lovedwhile others that 
deserve it far moreyou'd thinknever get much 
affection? As for Dickhe'd had enough of quiet 
married life--just like a man. He was for up and off. 
He went over to Nova Scotia to visit his relations--his 
father had come from Nova Scotia--and he wrote back to 
Leslie that his cousinGeorge Moorewas going on a 
voyage to Havana and he was going too. The name of the 
vessel was the Four Sisters and they were to be gone 
about nine weeks. 
It must have been a relief to Leslie. But she never 
said anything. From the day of her marriage she was 
just what she is now--cold and proud, and keeping 
everyone but me at a distance. I won't BE kept at a 
distance, believe ME! I've just stuck to Leslie as 
close as I knew how in spite of everything.
She told me you were the best friend she had,said 
Anne. 
Did she?exclaimed Miss Cornelia delightedly. 
Well, I'm real thankful to hear it. Sometimes I've 
wondered if she really did want me around at all--she 
never let me think so. You must have thawed her out 
more than you think, or she wouldn't have said that 
much itself to you. Oh, that poor, heart-broken girl! 
I never see Dick Moore but I want to run a knife clean 
through him.
Miss Cornelia wiped her eyes again and having relieved 
her feelings by her blood-thirsty wishtook up her 
tale. 
Well, Leslie was left over there alone. Dick had put 
in the crop before he went, and old Abner looked after 
it. The summer went by and the Four Sisters didn't 
come back. The Nova Scotia Moores investigated, and 
found she had got to Havana and discharged her cargo 
and took on another and left for home; and that was all 
they ever found out about her. By degrees people began 
to talk of Dick Moore as one that was dead. Almost 
everyone believed that he was, though no one felt 
certain, for men have turned up here at the harbor 
after they'd been gone for years. Leslie never thought 
he was dead--and she was right. A thousand pities too! 
The next summer Captain Jim was in Havana--that was 
before he gave up the sea, of course. He thought he'd 
poke round a bit--Captain Jim was always meddlesome, 
just like a man--and he went to inquiring round among 
the sailors' boarding houses and places like that, to 
see if he could find out anything about the crew of the 
Four Sisters. He'd better have let sleeping dogs lie, 
in my opinion! Well, he went to one out-of-the-way 
place, and there he found a man he knew at first sight 
it was Dick Moore, though he had a big beard. Captain 
Jim got it shaved off and then there was no 
doubt--Dick Moore it was--his body at least. His mind 
wasn't there--as for his soul, in my opinion he never 
had one!
What had happened to him?
Nobody knows the rights of it. All the folks who kept 
the boarding house could tell was that about a year 
before they had found him lying on their doorstep one 
morning in an awful condition--his head battered to a 
jelly almost. They supposed he'd got hurt in some 
drunken row, and likely that's the truth of it. They 
took him in, never thinking he could live. But he 
did--and he was just like a child when he got well. 
He hadn't memory or intellect or reason. They tried to 
find out who he was but they never could. He couldn't 
even tell them his name--he could only say a few simple 
words. He had a letter on him beginning `Dear Dick' 
and signed `Leslie,' but there was no address on it and 
the envelope was gone. They let him stay on--he 
learned to do a few odd jobs about the place--and there 
Captain Jim found him. He brought him home-- I've 
always said it was a bad day's work, though I s'pose 
there was nothing else he could do. He thought maybe 
when Dick got home and saw his old surroundings and 
familiar faces his memory would wake up. But it hadn't 
any effect. There he's been at the house up the brook 
ever since. He's just like a child, no more nor less. 
Takes fractious spells occasionally, but mostly he's 
just vacant and good humored and harmless. He's apt to 
run away if he isn't watched. That's the burden 
Leslie has had to carry for eleven years--and all 
alone. Old Abner Moore died soon after Dick was 
brought home and it was found he was almost bankrupt. 
When things were settled up there was nothing for 
Leslie and Dick but the old West farm. Leslie rented 
it to John Ward, and the rent is all she has to live 
on. Sometimes in summer she takes a boarder to help 
out. But most visitors prefer the other side of the 
harbor where the hotels and summer cottages are. 
Leslie's house is too far from the bathing shore. 
She's taken care of Dick and she's never been away from 
him for eleven years--she's tied to that imbecile for 
life. And after all the dreams and hopes she once had! 
You can imagine what it has been like for her, Anne, 
dearie--with her beauty and spirit and pride and 
cleverness. It's just been a living death.
Poor, poor girl!said Anne again. Her own happiness 
seemed to reproach her. What right had she to be so 
happy when another human soul must be so miserable? 
Will you tell me just what Leslie said and how she 
acted the night you met her on the shore?asked Miss 
Cornelia. 
She listened intently and nodded her satisfaction. 
YOU thought she was stiff and cold, Anne, dearie, but 
I can tell you she thawed out wonderful for her. She 
must have taken to you real strong. I'm so glad. You 
may be able to help her a good deal. I was thankful 
when I heard that a young couple was coming to this 
house, for I hoped it would mean some friends for 
Leslie; especially if you belonged to the race that 
knows Joseph. You WILL be her friend, won't you, Anne, 
dearie?
Indeed I will, if she'll let me,said Annewith all 
her own sweetimpulsive earnestness. 
No, you must be her friend, whether she'll let you or 
not,said Miss Cornelia resolutely. "Don't you mind 
if she's stiff by times-- don't notice it. Remember 
what her life has been--and is--and must always beI 
supposefor creatures like Dick Moore live foreverI 
understand. You should see how fat he's got since he 
came home. He used to be lean enough. Just MAKE her 
be friends--you can do it--you're one of those who have 
the knack. Only you mustn't be sensitive. And don't 
mind if she doesn't seem to want you to go over there 
much. She knows that some women don't like to be where 
Dick is--they complain he gives them the creeps. Just 
get her to come over here as often as she can. She 
can't get away so very much--she can't leave Dick long
for the Lord knows what he'd do--burn the house down 
most likely. At nightsafter he's in bed and asleep
is about the only time she's free. He always goes to 
bed early and sleeps like the dead till next morning. 
That is how you came to meet her at the shore likely. 
She wanders there considerable." 
I will do everything I can for her,said Anne. Her 
interest in Leslie Moorewhich had been vivid ever 
since she had seen her driving her geese down the hill
was intensified a thousand fold by Miss Cornelia's 
narration. The girl's beauty and sorrow and loneliness 
drew her with an irresistible fascination. She had 
never known anyone like her; her friends had hitherto 
been wholesomenormalmerry girls like herselfwith 
only the average trials of human care and bereavement 
to shadow their girlish dreams. Leslie Moore stood 
aparta tragicappealing figure of thwarted 
womanhood. Anne resolved that she would win entrance 
into the kingdom of that lonely soul and find there the 
comradeship it could so richly givewere it not for 
the cruel fetters that held it in a prison not of its 
own making. 
And mind you this, Anne, dearie,said Miss Cornelia
who had not yet wholly relieved her mindYou mustn't 
think Leslie is an infidel because she hardly ever goes 
to church--or even that she's a Methodist. She can't 
take Dick to church, of course--not that he ever 
troubled church much in his best days. But you just 
remember that she's a real strong Presbyterian at 
heart, Anne, dearie.
CHAPTER 12 
LESLIE COMES OVER 
Leslie came over to the house of dreams one frosty 
October nightwhen moonlit mists were hanging over the 
harbor and curling like silver ribbons along the 
seaward glens. She looked as if she repented coming 
when Gilbert answered her knock; but Anne flew past 
himpounced on herand drew her in. 
I'm so glad you picked tonight for a call,she said 
gaily. "I made up a lot of extra good fudge this 
afternoon and we want someone to help us eat it--before 
the fire--while we tell stories. Perhaps Captain Jim 
will drop intoo. This is his night." 
No. Captain Jim is over home,said Leslie. "He--he 
made me come here she added, half defiantly. 
I'll say a thank-you to him for that when I see him 
said Anne, pulling easy chairs before the fire. 
OhI don't mean that I didn't want to come 
protested Leslie, flushing a little. I--I've been 
thinking of coming--but it isn't always easy for me to 
get away." 
Of course it must be hard for you to leave Mr. 
Moore,said Annein a matter-of-fact tone. She had 
decided that it would be best to mention Dick Moore 
occasionally as an accepted factand not give undue 
morbidness to the subject by avoiding it. She was 
rightfor Leslie's air of constraint suddenly 
vanished. Evidently she had been wondering how much 
Anne knew of the conditions of her life and was 
relieved that no explanations were needed. She allowed 
her cap and jacket to be takenand sat down with a 
girlish snuggle in the big armchair by Magog. She was 
dressed prettily and carefullywith the customary 
touch of color in the scarlet geranium at her white 
throat. Her beautiful hair gleamed like molten gold in 
the warm firelight. Her sea-blue eyes were full of 
soft laughter and allurement. For the momentunder the 
influence of the little house of dreamsshe was a 
girl again--a girl forgetful of the past and its 
bitterness. The atmosphere of the many loves that had 
sanctified the little house was all about her; the 
companionship of two healthyhappyyoung folks of 
her own generation encircled her; she felt and yielded 
to the magic of her surroundings--Miss Cornelia and 
Captain Jim would scarcely have recognized her; Anne 
found it hard to believe that this was the cold
unresponsive woman she had met on the shore--this 
animated girl who talked and listened with the 
eagerness of a starved soul. And how hungrily Leslie's 
eyes looked at the bookcases between the windows! 
Our library isn't very extensive,said Annebut 
every book in it is a FRIEND. We've picked our books 
up through the years, here and there, never buying one 
until we had first read it and knew that it belonged to 
the race of Joseph.
Leslie laughed--beautiful laughter that seemed akin to 
all the mirth that had echoed through the little house 
in the vanished years. 
I have a few books of father's--not many,she said. 
I've read them until I know them almost by heart. I 
don't get many books. There's a circulating library at 
the Glen store--but I don't think the committee who 
pick the books for Mr. Parker know what books are of 
Joseph's race--or perhaps they don't care. It was so 
seldom I got one I really liked that I gave up getting 
any.
I hope you'll look on our bookshelves as your own,
said Anne. 
You are entirely and wholeheartedly welcome to the 
loan of any book on them.
You are setting a feast of fat things before me,
said Lesliejoyously. Thenas the clock struck ten
she rosehalf unwillingly. 
I must go. I didn't realise it was so late. Captain 
Jim is always saying it doesn't take long to stay an 
hour. But I've stayed two--and oh, but I've enjoyed 
them,she added frankly. 
Come often,said Anne and Gilbert. They had risen 
and stood together in the firelight's glow. Leslie 
looked at them--youthfulhopefulhappytypifying all 
she had missed and must forever miss. The light went 
out of her face and eyes; the girl vanished; it was the 
sorrowfulcheated woman who answered the invitation 
almost coldly and got herself away with a pitiful 
haste. 
Anne watched her until she was lost in the shadows of 
the chill and misty night. Then she turned slowly back 
to the glow of her own radiant hearthstone. 
Isn't she lovely, Gilbert? Her hair fascinates me. 
Miss Cornelia says it reaches to her feet. Ruby Gillis 
had beautiful hair--but Leslie's is ALIVE--every thread 
of it is living gold.
She is very beautiful,agreed Gilbertso heartily 
that Anne almost wished he were a LITTLE less 
enthusiastic. 
Gilbert, would you like my hair better if it were like 
Leslie's?she asked wistfully. 
I wouldn't have your hair any color but just what it 
is for the world,said Gilbertwith one or two 
convincing accompaniments. 
You wouldn't be ANNE if you had golden hair--or hair of 
any color but"-
Red,said Annewith gloomy satisfaction. 
Yes, red--to give warmth to that milk-white skin and 
those shining gray-green eyes of yours. Golden hair 
wouldn't suit you at all Queen Anne--MY Queen 
Anne--queen of my heart and life and home.
Then you may admire Leslie's all you like,said Anne 
magnanimously. 
CHAPTER 13 
A GHOSTLY EVENING 
One eveninga week laterAnne decided to run over the 
fields to the house up the brook for an informal call. 
It was an evening of gray fog that had crept in from 
the gulfswathed the harborfilled the glens and 
valleysand clung heavily to the autumnal meadows. 
Through it the sea sobbed and shuddered. Anne saw Four 
Winds in a new aspectand found it weird and 
mysterious and fascinating; but it also gave her a 
little feeling of loneliness. Gilbert was away and 
would be away until the morrowattending a medical 
pow-wow in Charlottetown. Anne longed for an hour of 
fellowship with some girl friend. Captain Jim and Miss 
Cornelia were "good fellows" eachin their own way; 
but youth yearned to youth. 
If only Diana or Phil or Pris or Stella could drop in 
for a chat,she said to herselfhow delightful it 
would be! This is such a GHOSTLY night. I'm sure all 
the ships that ever sailed out of Four Winds to their 
doom could be seen tonight sailing up the harbor with 
their drowned crews on their decks, if that shrouding 
fog could suddenly be drawn aside. I feel as if it 
concealed innumerable mysteries--as if I were 
surrounded by the wraiths of old generations of Four 
Winds people peering at me through that gray veil. If 
ever the dear dead ladies of this little house came 
back to revisit it they would come on just such a night 
as this. If I sit here any longer I'll see one of them 
there opposite me in Gilbert's chair. This place isn't 
exactly canny tonight. Even Gog and Magog have an air 
of pricking up their ears to hear the footsteps of 
unseen guests. I'll run over to see Leslie before I 
frighten myself with my own fancies, as I did long ago 
in the matter of the Haunted Wood. I'll leave my house 
of dreams to welcome back its old inhabitants. My fire 
will give them my good-will and greeting--they will be 
gone before I come back, and my house will be mine once 
more. Tonight I am sure it is keeping a tryst with the 
past.
Laughing a little over her fancyyet with something of 
a creepy sensation in the region of her spineAnne 
kissed her hand to Gog and Magog and slipped out into 
the fogwith some of the new magazines under her arm 
for Leslie. 
Leslie's wild for books and magazines,Miss Cornelia 
had told herand she hardly ever sees one. She can't 
afford to buy them or subscribe for them. She's really 
pitifully poor, Anne. I don't see how she makes out to 
live at all on the little rent the farm brings in. 
She never even hints a complaint on the score of 
poverty, but I know what it must be. She's been 
handicapped by it all her life. She didn't mind it 
when she was free and ambitious, but it must gall now, 
believe ME. I'm glad she seemed so bright and merry 
the evening she spent with you. Captain Jim told me he 
had fairly to put her cap and coat on and push her out 
of the door. Don't be too long going to see her 
either. If you are she'll think it's because you don't 
like the sight of Dick, and she'll crawl into her shell 
again. Dick's a great, big, harmless baby, but that 
silly grin and chuckle of his do get on some people's 
nerves. Thank goodness, I've no nerves myself. I like 
Dick Moore better now than I ever did when he was in 
his right senses--though the Lord knows that isn't 
saying much. I was down there one day in housecleaning 
time helping Leslie a bit, and I was frying doughnuts. 
Dick was hanging round to get one, as usual, and all at 
once he picked up a scalding hot one I'd just fished 
out and dropped it on the back of my neck when I was 
bending over. Then he laughed and laughed. Believe 
ME, Anne, it took all the grace of God in my heart to 
keep me from just whisking up that stew-pan of boiling 
fat and pouring it over his head.
Anne laughed over Miss Cornelia's wrath as she sped 
through the darkness. But laughter accorded ill with 
that night. She was sober enough when she reached the 
house among the willows. Everything was very silent. 
The front part of the house seemed dark and deserted
so Anne slipped round to the side doorwhich opened 
from the veranda into a little sitting room. There she 
halted noiselessly. 
The door was open. Beyondin the dimly lighted room
sat Leslie Moorewith her arms flung out on the table 
and her head bent upon them. She was weeping 
horribly--with lowfiercechoking sobsas if some 
agony in her soul were trying to tear itself out. An 
old black dog was sitting by herhis nose resting on 
his laphis big doggish eyes full of muteimploring 
sympathy and devotion. Anne drew back in dismay. She 
felt that she could not intermeddle with this 
bitterness. Her heart ached with a sympathy she might 
not utter. To go in now would be to shut the door 
forever on any possible help or friendship. Some 
instinct warned Anne that the proudbitter girl would 
never forgive the one who thus surprised her in her 
abandonment of despair. 
Anne slipped noiselessly from the veranda and found her 
way across the yard. Beyondshe heard voices in the 
gloom and saw the dim glow of a light. At the gate she 
met two men--Captain Jim with a lanternand another 
who she knew must be Dick Moore--a big manbadly gone 
to fatwith a broadroundred faceand vacant eyes. 
Even in the dull light Anne got the impression that 
there was something unusual about his eyes. 
Is this you, Mistress Blythe?said Captain Jim. 
Now, now, you hadn't oughter be roaming about alone on 
a night like this. You could get lost in this fog 
easier than not. Jest you wait till I see Dick safe 
inside the door and I'll come back and light you over 
the fields. I ain't going to have Dr. Blythe coming 
home and finding that you walked clean over Cape 
Leforce in the fog. A woman did that once, forty years 
ago. 
So you've been over to see Leslie he said, when he 
rejoined her. 
I didn't go in said Anne, and told what she had 
seen. Captain Jim sighed. 
Poorpoorlittle girl! She don't cry often
Mistress Blythe-- she's too brave for that. She must 
feel terrible when she does cry. A night like this is 
hard on poor women who have sorrows. There's 
something about it that kinder brings up all we've 
suffered--or feared." 
It's full of ghosts,said Annewith a shiver. 
That was why I came over--I wanted to clasp a human 
hand and hear a human voice. 
There seem to be so many INHUMAN presences about 
tonight. Even my own dear house was full of them. 
They fairly elbowed me out. So I fled over here for 
companionship of my kind.
You were right not to go in, though, Mistress Blythe. 
Leslie wouldn't have liked it. She wouldn't have liked 
me going in with Dick, as I'd have done if I hadn't met 
you. I had Dick down with me all day. I keep him with 
me as much as I can to help Leslie a bit.
Isn't there something odd about his eyes?asked 
Anne. 
You noticed that? Yes, one is blue and t'other is 
hazel--his father had the same. It's a Moore 
peculiarity. That was what told me he was Dick Moore 
when I saw him first down in Cuby. If it hadn't a-bin 
for his eyes I mightn't a-known him, with his beard and 
fat. You know, I reckon, that it was me found him and 
brought him home. Miss Cornelia always says I 
shouldn't have done it, but I can't agree with her. It 
was the RIGHT thing to do--and so 'twas the only thing. 
There ain't no question in my mind about THAT. But my 
old heart aches for Leslie. She's only twenty-eight 
and she's eaten more bread with sorrow than most women 
do in eighty years.
They walked on in silence for a little while. 
Presently Anne saidDo you know, Captain Jim, I never 
like walking with a lantern. I have always the 
strangest feeling that just outside the circle of 
light, just over its edge in the darkness, I am 
surrounded by a ring of furtive, sinister things, 
watching me from the shadows with hostile eyes. I've 
had that feeling from childhood. What is the reason? 
I never feel like that when I'm really in the 
darkness--when it is close all around me--I'm not the 
least frightened.
I've something of that feeling myself,admitted 
Captain Jim. "I reckon when the darkness is close to 
us it is a friend. But when we sorter push it away 
from us--divorce ourselves from itso to speakwith 
lantern light--it becomes an enemy. But the fog is 
lifting. 
There's a smart west wind risingif you notice. The 
stars will be out when you get home." 
They were out; and when Anne re-entered her house of 
dreams the red embers were still glowing on the hearth
and all the haunting presences were gone. 
CHAPTER 14 
NOVEMBER DAYS 
The splendor of color which had glowed for weeks along 
the shores of Four Winds Harbor had faded out into the 
soft gray-blue of late autumnal hills. There came many 
days when fields and shores were dim with misty rain
or shivering before the breath of a melancholy 
sea-wind--nightstooof storm and tempestwhen Anne 
sometimes wakened to pray that no ship might be beating 
up the grim north shorefor if it were so not even the 
greatfaithful light whirling through the darkness 
unafraidcould avail to guide it into safe haven. 
In November I sometimes feel as if spring could never 
come again,she sighedgrieving over the hopeless 
unsightliness of her frosted and bedraggled 
flower-plots. The gay little garden of the 
schoolmaster's bride was rather a forlorn place now
and the Lombardies and birches were under bare poles
as Captain Jim said. But the fir-wood behind the 
little house was forever green and staunch; and even in 
November and December there came gracious days of 
sunshine and purple hazeswhen the harbor danced and 
sparkled as blithely as in midsummerand the gulf was 
so softly blue and tender that the storm and the wild 
wind seemed only things of a long-past dream. 
Anne and Gilbert spent many an autumn evening at the 
lighthouse. It was always a cheery place. Even when 
the east wind sang in minor and the sea was dead and 
grayhints of sunshine seemed to be lurking all about 
it. Perhaps this was because the First Mate always 
paraded it in panoply of gold. He was so large and 
effulgent that one hardly missed the sunand his 
resounding purrs formed a pleasant accompaniment to 
the laughter and conversation which went on around 
Captain Jim's fireplace. Captain Jim and Gilbert had 
many long discussions and high converse on matters 
beyond the ken of cat or king. 
I like to ponder on all kinds of problems, though I 
can't solve 'em,said Captain Jim. "My father held 
that we should never talk of things we couldn't 
understandbut if we didn'tdoctorthe subjects for 
conversation would be mighty few. I reckon the gods 
laugh many a time to hear usbut what matters so long 
as we remember that we're only men and don't take to 
fancying that we're gods ourselvesreallyknowing 
good and evil. I reckon our pow- wows won't do us or 
anyone much harmso let's have another whack at the 
whencewhy and whither this eveningdoctor." 
While they "whacked Anne listened or dreamed. 
Sometimes Leslie went to the lighthouse with them, and 
she and Anne wandered along the shore in the eerie 
twilight, or sat on the rocks below the lighthouse 
until the darkness drove them back to the cheer of the 
driftwood fire. Then Captain Jim would brew them tea 
and tell them
 tales of land and sea And whatsoever might 
betide The great forgotten world outside."
Leslie seemed always to enjoy those lighthouse 
carousals very muchand bloomed out for the time being 
into ready wit and beautiful laughteror glowing-eyed 
silence. There was a certain tang and savor in the 
conversation when Leslie was present which they missed 
when she was absent. Even when she did not talk she 
seemed to inspire others to brilliancy. Captain Jim 
told his stories betterGilbert was quicker in 
argument and reparteeAnne felt little gushes and 
trickles of fancy and imagination bubbling to her lips 
under the influence of Leslie's personality. 
That girl was born to be a leader in social and 
intellectual circles, far away from Four Winds,she 
said to Gilbert as they walked home one night. "She's 
just wasted here--wasted." 
Weren't you listening to Captain Jim and yours truly 
the other night when we discussed that subject 
generally? We came to the comforting conclusion that 
the Creator probably knew how to run His universe quite 
as well as we do, and that, after all, there are no 
such things as `wasted' lives, saving and except when 
an individual wilfully squanders and wastes his own 
life--which Leslie Moore certainly hasn't done. And 
some people might think that a Redmond B.A., whom 
editors were beginning to honor, was `wasted' as the 
wife of a struggling country doctor in the rural 
community of Four Winds.
Gilbert!
If you had married Roy Gardner, now,continued 
Gilbert mercilesslyYOU could have been `a leader in 
social and intellectual circles far away from Four 
Winds.'
Gilbert BLYTHE!
You KNOW you were in love with him at one time, 
Anne.
Gilbert, that's mean--`pisen mean, just like all the 
men,' as Miss Cornelia says. I NEVER was in love with 
him. I only imagined I was. YOU know that. You KNOW 
I'd rather be your wife in our house of dreams and 
fulfillment than a queen in a palace.
Gilbert's answer was not in words; but I am afraid that 
both of them forgot poor Leslie speeding her lonely way 
across the fields to a house that was neither a palace 
nor the fulfillment of a dream. 
The moon was rising over the saddark sea behind them 
and transfiguring it. Her light had not yet reached 
the harborthe further side of which was shadowy and 
suggestivewith dim coves and rich glooms and 
jewelling lights. 
How the home lights shine out tonight through the 
dark!said Anne. "That string of them over the 
harbor looks like a necklace. And what a coruscation 
there is up at the Glen! OhlookGilbert; there is 
ours. I'm so glad we left it burning. I hate to come 
home to a dark house. OUR homelightGilbert! Isn't 
it lovely to see?" 
Just one of earth's many millions of homes, 
Anne--girl--but ours-- OURS--our beacon in `a naughty 
world.' When a fellow has a home and a dear, little, 
red-haired wife in it what more need he ask of life?
Well, he might ask ONE thing more,whispered Anne 
happily. "OhGilbertit seems as if I just COULDN'T 
wait for the spring." 
CHAPTER 15 
CHRISTMAS AT FOUR WINDS 
At first Anne and Gilbert talked of going home to 
Avonlea for Christmas; but eventually they decided to 
stay in Four Winds. "I want to spend the first 
Christmas of our life together in our own home 
decreed Anne. 
So it fell out that Marilla and Mrs. Rachel Lynde and 
the twins came to Four Winds for Christmas. Marilla 
had the face of a woman who had circumnavigated the 
globe. She had never been sixty miles away from home 
before; and she had never eaten a Christmas dinner 
anywhere save at Green Gables. 
Mrs. Rachel had made and brought with her an enormous 
plum pudding. Nothing could have convinced Mrs. Rachel 
that a college graduate of the younger generation could 
make a Christmas plum pudding properly; but she 
bestowed approval on Anne's house. 
Anne's a good housekeeper she said to Marilla in 
the spare room the night of their arrival. I've 
looked into her bread box and her scrap pail. I always 
judge a housekeeper by thosethat's what. There's 
nothing in the pail that shouldn't have been thrown 
awayand no stale pieces in the bread box. Of course
she was trained up with you--butthenshe went to 
college afterwards. I notice she's got my tobacco 
stripe quilt on the bed hereand that big round 
braided mat of yours before her living-room fire. It 
makes me feel right at home." 
Anne's first Christmas in her own house was as 
delightful as she could have wished. The day was fine 
and bright; the first skim of snow had fallen on 
Christmas Eve and made the world beautiful; the harbor 
was still open and glittering. 
Captain Jim and Miss Cornelia came to dinner. Leslie 
and Dick had been invitedbut Leslie made excuse; they 
always went to her Uncle Isaac West's for Christmas
she said. 
She'd rather have it so,Miss Cornelia told Anne. 
She can't bear taking Dick where there are strangers. 
Christmas is always a hard time for Leslie. She and 
her father used to make a lot of it.
Miss Cornelia and Mrs. Rachel did not take a very 
violent fancy to each other. "Two suns hold not their 
courses in one sphere." But they did not clash at 
allfor Mrs. Rachel was in the kitchen helping Anne 
and Marilla with the dinnerand it fell to Gilbert to 
entertain Captain Jim and Miss Cornelia--or rather to 
be entertained by themfor a dialogue between those 
two old friends and antagonists was assuredly never 
dull. 
It's many a year since there was a Christmas dinner 
here, Mistress Blythe,said Captain Jim. "Miss 
Russell always went to her friends in town for 
Christmas. But I was here to the first Christmas 
dinner that was ever eaten in this house--and the 
schoolmaster's bride cooked it. That was sixty years 
ago todayMistress Blythe--and a day very like 
this--just enough snow to make the hills whiteand the 
harbor as blue as June. I was only a ladand I'd 
never been invited out to dinner beforeand I was too 
shy to eat enough. I've got all over THAT." 
Most men do,said Miss Corneliasewing furiously. 
Miss Cornelia was not going to sit with idle hands
even on Christmas. 
Babies come without any consideration for holidaysand 
there was one expected in a poverty-stricken household 
at Glen St. Mary. Miss Cornelia had sent that 
household a substantial dinner for its little swarm
and so meant to eat her own with a comfortable 
conscience. 
Well, you know, the way to a man's heart is through 
his stomach, Cornelia,explained Captain Jim. 
I believe you--when he HAS a heart,retorted Miss 
Cornelia. "I suppose that's why so many women kill 
themselves cooking--just as poor Amelia Baxter did. 
She died last Christmas morningand she said it was 
the first Christmas since she was married that she 
didn't have to cook a bigtwenty-plate dinner. It 
must have been a real pleasant change for her. Well
she's been dead a yearso you'll soon hear of Horace 
Baxter taking notice." 
I heard he was taking notice already,said Captain 
Jimwinking at Gilbert. "Wasn't he up to your place 
one Sunday latelywith his funeral blacks onand a 
boiled collar?" 
No, he wasn't. And he needn't come neither. I could 
have had him long ago when he was fresh. I don't want 
any second-hand goods, believe ME. As for Horace 
Baxter, he was in financial difficulties a year ago 
last summer, and he prayed to the Lord for help; and 
when his wife died and he got her life insurance he 
said he believed it was the answer to his prayer. 
Wasn't that like a man?
Have you really proof that he said that, Cornelia?
I have the Methodist minister's word for it--if you 
call THAT proof. Robert Baxter told me the same thing 
too, but I admit THAT isn't evidence. Robert Baxter 
isn't often known to tell the truth.
Come, come, Cornelia, I think he generally tells the 
truth, but he changes his opinion so often it sometimes 
sounds as if he didn't.
It sounds like it mighty often, believe ME. But trust 
one man to excuse another. I have no use for Robert 
Baxter. He turned Methodist just because the 
Presbyterian choir happened to be singing `Behold the 
bridegroom cometh' for a collection piece when him and 
Margaret walked up the aisle the Sunday after they were 
married. Served him right for being late! He always 
insisted the choir did it on purpose to insult him, as 
if he was of that much importance. But that family 
always thought they were much bigger potatoes than they 
really were. His brother Eliphalet imagined the devil 
was always at his elbow--but _I_ never believed the 
devil wasted that much time on him.
I--don't--know,said Captain Jim thoughtfully. 
Eliphalet Baxter lived too much alone--hadn't even a 
cat or dog to keep him human. When a man is alone he's 
mighty apt to be with the devil--if he ain't with God. 
He has to choose which company he'll keep, I reckon. 
If the devil always was at Life Baxter's elbow it must 
have been because Life liked to have him there.
Man-like,said Miss Corneliaand subsided into 
silence over a complicated arrangement of tucks until 
Captain Jim deliberately stirred her up again by 
remarking in a casual way: 
I was up to the Methodist church last Sunday 
morning.
You'd better have been home reading your Bible,was 
Miss Cornelia's retort. 
Come, now, Cornelia, _I_ can't see any harm in going 
to the Methodist church when there's no preaching in 
your own. I've been a Presbyterian for seventy-six 
years, and it isn't likely my theology will hoist 
anchor at this late day.
It's setting a bad example,said Miss Cornelia 
grimly. 
Besides,continued wicked Captain JimI wanted to 
hear some good singing. The Methodists have a good 
choir; and you can't deny, Cornelia, that the singing 
in our church is awful since the split in the choir.
What if the singing isn't good? They're doing their 
best, and God sees no difference between the voice of a 
crow and the voice of a nightingale.
Come, come, Cornelia,said Captain Jim mildlyI've 
a better opinion of the Almighty's ear for music than 
THAT.
What caused the trouble in our choir?asked Gilbert
who was suffering from suppressed laughter. 
It dates back to the new church, three years ago,
answered Captain Jim. "We had a fearful time over the 
building of that church--fell out over the question of 
a new site. The two sites wasn't more'n two hundred 
yards apartbut you'd have thought they was a thousand 
by the bitterness of that fight. We was split up into 
three factions--one wanted the east site and one the 
southand one held to the old. It was fought out in 
bed and at boardand in church and at market. All 
the old scandals of three generations were dragged out 
of their graves and aired. Three matches was broken up 
by it. And the meetings we had to try to settle the 
question! Corneliawill you ever forget the one when 
old Luther Burns got up and made a speech? HE stated 
his opinions forcibly." 
Call a spade a spade, Captain. You mean he got 
red-mad and raked them all, fore and aft. They 
deserved it too--a pack of incapables. But what would 
you expect of a committee of men? That building 
committee held twenty-seven meetings, and at the end of 
the twenty-seventh weren't no nearer having a church 
than when they begun--not so near, for a fact, for in 
one fit of hurrying things along they'd gone to work 
and tore the old church down, so there we were, 
without a church, and no place but the hall to worship 
in.
The Methodists offered us their church, Cornelia.
The Glen St. Mary church wouldn't have been built to 
this day,went on Miss Corneliaignoring Captain 
Jimif we women hadn't just started in and took 
charge. We said WE meant to have a church, if the men 
meant to quarrel till doomsday, and we were tired of 
being a laughing-stock for the Methodists. We held ONE 
meeting and elected a committee and canvassed for 
subscriptions. We got them, too. When any of the men 
tried to sass us we told them they'd tried for two 
years to build a church and it was our turn now. We 
shut them up close, believe ME, and in six months we 
had our church. Of course, when the men saw we were 
determined they stopped fighting and went to work, 
man-like, as soon as they saw they had to, or quit 
bossing. Oh, women can't preach or be elders; but they 
can build churches and scare up the money for them.
The Methodists allow women to preach,said Captain 
Jim. 
Miss Cornelia glared at him. 
I never said the Methodists hadn't common sense, 
Captain. What I say is, I doubt if they have much 
religion.
I suppose you are in favor of votes for women, Miss 
Cornelia,said Gilbert. 
I'm not hankering after the vote, believe ME,said 
Miss Cornelia scornfully. "_I_ know what it is to 
clean up after the men. But some of these dayswhen 
the men realize they've got the world into a mess they 
can't get it out ofthey'll be glad to give us the 
voteand shoulder their troubles over on us. That's 
THEIR scheme. Ohit's well that women are patient
believe ME!" 
What about Job?suggested Captain Jim. 
Job! It was such a rare thing to find a patient man 
that when one was really discovered they were 
determined he shouldn't be forgotten,retorted Miss 
Cornelia triumphantly. "Anyhowthe virtue doesn't go 
with the name. There never was such an impatient man 
born as old Job Taylor over harbor." 
Well, you know, he had a good deal to try him, 
Cornelia. Even you can't defend his wife. I always 
remember what old William MacAllister said of her at 
her funeral, `There's nae doot she was a Chreestian 
wumman, but she had the de'il's own temper.'
I suppose she WAS trying,admitted Miss Cornelia 
reluctantlybut that didn't justify what Job said 
when she died. He rode home from the graveyard the day 
of the funeral with my father. He never said a word 
till they got near home. Then he heaved a big sigh and 
said, `You may not believe it, Stephen, but this is the 
happiest day of my life!' Wasn't that like a man?
I s'pose poor old Mrs. Job did make life kinder uneasy 
for him,reflected Captain Jim. 
Well, there's such a thing as decency, isn't there? 
Even if a man is rejoicing in his heart over his wife 
being dead, he needn't proclaim it to the four winds of 
heaven. And happy day or not, Job Taylor wasn't long 
in marrying again, you might notice. His second wife 
could manage him. She made him walk Spanish, believe 
me! The first thing she did was to make him hustle 
round and put up a tombstone to the first Mrs. 
Job--and she had a place left on it for her own name. 
She said there'd be nobody to make Job put up a 
monument to HER.
Speaking of Taylors, how is Mrs. Lewis Taylor up at 
the Glen, doctor?asked Captain Jim. 
She's getting better slowly--but she has to work too 
hard,replied Gilbert. 
Her husband works hard too--raising prize pigs,said 
Miss Cornelia. "He's noted for his beautiful pigs. 
He's a heap prouder of his pigs than of his children. 
But thento be surehis pigs are the best pigs 
possiblewhile his children don't amount to much. He 
picked a poor mother for themand starved her while 
she was bearing and rearing them. His pigs got the 
cream and his children got the skim milk. 
There are times, Cornelia, when I have to agree with 
you, though it hurts me,said Captain Jim. "That's 
just exactly the truth about Lewis Taylor. When I see 
those poormiserable children of hisrobbed of all 
children ought to haveit p'isens my own bite and sup 
for days afterwards." 
Gilbert went out to the kitchen in response to Anne's 
beckoning. Anne shut the door and gave him a connubial 
lecture. 
Gilbert, you and Captain Jim must stop baiting Miss 
Cornelia. Oh, I've been listening to you--and I just 
won't allow it.
`AnneMiss Cornelia is enjoying herself hugely. You 
know she is.' 
Well, never mind. You two needn't egg her on like 
that. Dinner is ready now, and, Gilbert, DON'T let 
Mrs. Rachel carve the geese. I know she means to offer 
to do it because she doesn't think you can do it 
properly. Show her you can.
I ought to be able to. I've been studying A-B-C-D 
diagrams of carving for the past month,said Gilbert. 
Only don't talk to me while I'm doing it, Anne, for if 
you drive the letters out of my head I'll be in a worse 
predicament than you were in old geometry days when 
the teacher changed them.
Gilbert carved the geese beautifully. Even Mrs. Rachel 
had to admit that. And everybody ate of them and 
enjoyed them. Anne's first Christmas dinner was a 
great success and she beamed with housewifely pride. 
Merry was the feast and long; and when it was over they 
gathered around the cheer of the red hearth flame and 
Captain Jim told them stories until the red sun swung 
low over Four Winds Harborand the long blue shadows 
of the Lombardies fell across the snow in the lane. 
I must be getting back to the light,he said 
finally. "I'll jest have time to walk home before 
sundown. Thank you for a beautiful ChristmasMistress 
Blythe. Bring Master Davy down to the light some 
night before he goes home. 
I want to see those stone gods,said Davy with a 
relish. 
CHAPTER 16 
NEW YEAR'S EVE AT THE LIGHT 
The Green Gables folk went home after Christmas
Marilla under solemn covenant to return for a month in 
the spring. More snow came before New Year'sand the 
harbor froze overbut the gulf still was freebeyond 
the whiteimprisoned fields. The last day of the old 
year was one of those brightcolddazzling winter 
dayswhich bombard us with their brilliancyand 
command our admiration but never our love. The sky was 
sharp and blue; the snow diamonds sparkled insistently; 
the stark trees were bare and shamelesswith a kind of 
brazen beauty; the hills shot assaulting lances of 
crystal. Even the shadows were sharp and stiff and 
clear-cutas no proper shadows should be. Everything 
that was handsome seemed ten times handsomer and less 
attractive in the glaring splendor; and everything that 
was ugly seemed ten times uglierand everything was 
either handsome or ugly. There was no soft blending
or kind obscurityor elusive mistiness in that 
searching glitter. The only things that held their own 
individuality were the firs--for the fir is the tree of 
mystery and shadowand yields never to the 
encroachments of crude radiance. 
But finally the day began to realise that she was 
growing old. Then a certain pensiveness fell over her 
beauty which dimmed yet intensified it; sharp angles
glittering pointsmelted away into curves and 
enticing gleams. The white harbor put on soft grays 
and pinks; the far-away hills turned amethyst. 
The old year is going away beautifully,said Anne. 
She and Leslie and Gilbert were on their way to the 
Four Winds Pointhaving plotted with Captain Jim to 
watch the New Year in at the light. The sun had set 
and in the southwestern sky hung Venusglorious and 
goldenhaving drawn as near to her earth-sister as is 
possible for her. For the first time Anne and Gilbert 
saw the shadow cast by that brilliant star of evening
that faintmysterious shadownever seen save when 
there is white snow to reveal itand then only with 
averted visionvanishing when you gaze at it directly. 
It's like the spirit of a shadow, isn't it?
whispered Anne. "You can see it so plainly haunting 
your side when you look ahead; but when you turn and 
look at it--it's gone." 
I have heard that you can see the shadow of Venus only 
once in a lifetime, and that within a year of seeing it 
your life's most wonderful gift will come to you,
said Leslie. But she spoke rather hardly; perhaps she 
thought that even the shadow of Venus could bring her 
no gift of life. Anne smiled in the soft twilight; she 
felt quite sure what the mystic shadow promised her. 
They found Marshall Elliott at the lighthouse. At 
first Anne felt inclined to resent the intrusion of 
this long-hairedlong-bearded eccentric into the 
familiar little circle. But Marshall Elliott soon 
proved his legitimate claim to membership in the 
household of Joseph. He was a wittyintelligent
well-read manrivalling Captain Jim himself in the 
knack of telling a good story. They were all glad when 
he agreed to watch the old year out with them. 
Captain Jim's small nephew Joe had come down to spend 
New Year's with his great-uncleand had fallen asleep 
on the sofa with the First Mate curled up in a huge 
golden ball at his feet. 
Ain't he a dear little man?said Captain Jim 
gloatingly. "I do love to watch a little child asleep
Mistress Blythe. It's the most beautiful sight in the 
worldI reckon. Joe does love to get down here for a 
nightbecause I have him sleep with me. At home he 
has to sleep with the other two boysand he doesn't 
like it. "Why can't I sleep with fatherUncle Jim?" 
says he. `Everybody in the Bible slept with their 
fathers.' As for the questions he asksthe minister 
himself couldn't answer them. They fair swamp me. 
`Uncle Jimif I wasn't ME who'd I be?' and`Uncle 
Jimwhat would happen if God died?' He fired them two 
off at me tonightafore he went to sleep. As for his 
imaginationit sails away from everything. He makes 
up the most remarkable yarns--and then his mother shuts 
him up in the closet for telling stories . And he sits 
down and makes up another oneand has it ready to 
relate to her when she lets him out. He had one for me 
when he come down tonight. `Uncle Jim' says he
solemn as a tombstone`I had a 'venture in the Glen 
today.' `Yeswhat was it?' says Iexpecting 
something quite startlingbut nowise prepared for 
what I really got. `I met a wolf in the street' says 
he`a 'normous wolf with a bigred mouf and AWFUL 
long teethUncle Jim.' `I didn't know there was any 
wolves up at the Glen' says I. `Ohhe comed there 
from farfar away' says Joe`and I fought he was 
going to eat me upUncle Jim.' `Were you scared?' 
says I. `No'cause I had a big gun' says Joe`and I 
shot the wolf deadUncle Jim--solid dead--and then 
he went up to heaven and bit God' says he. WellI 
was fair staggeredMistress Blythe." 
The hours bloomed into mirth around the driftwood fire. 
Captain Jim told talesand Marshall Elliott sang old 
Scotch ballads in a fine tenor voice; finally Captain 
Jim took down his old brown fiddle from the wall and 
began to play. He had a tolerable knack of fiddling
which all appreciated save the First Matewho sprang 
from the sofa as if he had been shotemitted a shriek 
of protestand fled wildly up the stairs. 
Can't cultivate an ear for music in that cat nohow,
said Captain Jim. "He won't stay long enough to learn 
to like it. When we got the organ up at the Glen 
church old Elder Richards bounced up from his seat the 
minute the organist began to play and scuttled down the 
aisle and out of the church at the rate of 
no-man's-business. It reminded me so strong of the 
First Mate tearing loose as soon as I begin to fiddle 
that I come nearer to laughing out loud in church than 
I ever did before or since." 
There was something so infectious in the rollicking 
tunes which Captain Jim played that very soon Marshall 
Elliott's feet began to twitch. He had been a noted 
dancer in his youth. Presently he started up and held 
out his hands to Leslie. Instantly she responded. 
Round and round the firelit room they circled with a 
rhythmic grace that was wonderful. Leslie danced like 
one inspired; the wildsweet abandon of the music 
seemed to have entered into and possessed her. Anne 
watched her in fascinated admiration. She had never 
seen her like this. All the innate richness and color 
and charm of her nature seemed to have broken loose and 
overflowed in crimson cheek and glowing eye and grace 
of motion. Even the aspect of Marshall Elliottwith 
his long beard and haircould not spoil the picture. 
On the contraryit seemed to enhance it. Marshall 
Elliott looked like a Viking of elder daysdancing 
with one of the blue-eyedgolden-haired daughters of 
the Northland. 
The purtiest dancing I ever saw, and I've seen some in 
my time,declared Captain Jimwhen at last the bow 
fell from his tired hand. Leslie dropped into her 
chairlaughingbreathless. 
I love dancing,she said apart to Anne. "I haven't 
danced since I was sixteen--but I love it. The music 
seems to run through my veins like quicksilver and I 
forget everything--everything--except the delight of 
keeping time to it. There isn't any floor beneath me
or walls about meor roof over me--I'm floating amid 
the stars." 
Captain Jim hung his fiddle up in its placebeside a 
large frame enclosing several banknotes. 
Is there anybody else of your acquaintance who can 
afford to hang his walls with banknotes for pictures?
he asked. "There's twenty ten-dollar notes therenot 
worth the glass over them. They're old Bank of P. E. 
Island notes. Had them by me when the bank failedand 
I had 'em framed and hung uppartly as a reminder not 
to put your trust in banksand partly to give me a 
real luxuriousmillionairy feeling. HulloMatey
don't be scared. You can come back now. The music and 
revelry is over for tonight. The old year has just 
another hour to stay with us. I've seen seventy-six 
New Years come in over that gulf yonderMistress 
Blythe." 
You'll see a hundred,said Marshall Elliott. 
Captain Jim shook his head. 
No; and I don't want to--at least, I think I don't. 
Death grows friendlier as we grow older. Not that one 
of us really wants to die though, Marshall. Tennyson 
spoke truth when he said that. There's old Mrs. 
Wallace up at the Glen. She's had heaps of trouble all 
her life, poor soul, and she's lost almost everyone she 
cared about. She's always saying that she'll be glad 
when her time comes, and she doesn't want to sojourn 
any longer in this vale of tears. But when she takes a 
sick spell there's a fuss! Doctors from town, and a 
trained nurse, and enough medicine to kill a dog. Life 
may be a vale of tears, all right, but there are some 
folks who enjoy weeping, I reckon.
They spent the old year's last hour quietly around the 
fire. A few minutes before twelve Captain Jim rose and 
opened the door. 
We must let the New Year in,he said. 
Outside was a fine blue night. A sparkling ribbon of 
moonlight garlanded the gulf. Inside the bar the 
harbor shone like a pavement of pearl. They stood 
before the door and waited--Captain Jim with his ripe
full experienceMarshall Elliott in his vigorous but 
empty middle lifeGilbert and Anne with their precious 
memories and exquisite hopesLeslie with her record of 
starved years and her hopeless future. The clock on 
the little shelf above the fireplace struck twelve. 
Welcome, New Year,said Captain Jimbowing low as 
the last stroke died away. "I wish you all the best 
year of your livesmates. I reckon that whatever the 
New Year brings us will be the best the Great Captain 
has for us--and somehow or other we'll all make port in 
a good harbor." 
CHAPTER 17 
A FOUR WINDS WINTER 
Winter set in vigorously after New Year's. Bigwhite 
drifts heaped themselves about the little houseand 
palms of frost covered its windows. The harbor ice 
grew harder and thickeruntil the Four Winds people 
began their usual winter travelling over it. The safe 
ways were "bushed" by a benevolent Governmentand 
night and day the gay tinkle of the sleigh-bells 
sounded on it. On moonlit nights Anne heard them in 
her house of dreams like fairy chimes. The gulf froze 
overand the Four Winds light flashed no more. During 
the months when navigation was closed Captain Jim's 
office was a sinecure. 
The First Mate and I will have nothing to do till 
spring except keep warm and amuse ourselves. The last 
lighthouse keeper used always to move up to the Glen in 
winter; but I'd rather stay at the Point. The First 
Mate might get poisoned or chewed up by dogs at the 
Glen. It's a mite lonely, to be sure, with neither the 
light nor the water for company, but if our friends 
come to see us often we'll weather it through.
Captain Jim had an ice boatand many a wildglorious 
spin Gilbert and Anne and Leslie had over the glib 
harbor ice with him. Anne and Leslie took long 
snowshoe tramps togethertooover the fieldsor 
across the harbor after stormsor through the woods 
beyond the Glen. They were very good comrades in their 
rambles and their fireside communings. Each had 
something to give the other--each felt life the richer 
for friendly exchange of thought and friendly silence; 
each looked across the white fields between their homes 
with a pleasant consciousness of a friend beyond. But
in spite of all thisAnne felt that there was always a 
barrier between Leslie and herself--a constraint that 
never wholly vanished. 
I don't know why I can't get closer to her,Anne 
said one evening to Captain Jim. "I like her so 
much--I admire her so much--I WANT to take her right 
into my heart and creep right into hers. But I can 
never cross the barrier." 
You've been too happy all your life, Mistress 
Blythe,said Captain Jim thoughtfully. "I reckon 
that's why you and Leslie can't get real close together 
in your souls. The barrier between you is her 
experience of sorrow and trouble. She ain't 
responsible for it and you ain't; but it's there and 
neither of you can cross it." 
My childhood wasn't very happy before I came to Green 
Gables,said Annegazing soberly out of the window 
at the stillsaddead beauty of the leafless 
tree-shadows on the moonlit snow. 
Mebbe not--but it was just the usual unhappiness of a 
child who hasn't anyone to look after it properly. 
There hasn't been any TRAGEDY in your life, Mistress 
Blythe. And poor Leslie's has been almost ALL 
tragedy. She feels, I reckon, though mebbe she hardly 
knows she feels it, that there's a vast deal in her 
life you can't enter nor understand--and so she has to 
keep you back from it--hold you off, so to speak, from 
hurting her. You know if we've got anything about us 
that hurts we shrink from anyone's touch on or near it. 
It holds good with our souls as well as our bodies, I 
reckon. Leslie's soul must be near raw--it's no wonder 
she hides it away.
If that were really all, I wouldn't mind, Captain Jim. 
I would understand. But there are times--not always, 
but now and again-- when I almost have to believe that 
Leslie doesn't--doesn't like me. Sometimes I surprise 
a look in her eyes that seems to show resentment and 
dislike--it goes so quickly--but I've seen it, I'm sure 
of that. And it hurts me, Captain Jim. I'm not used 
to being disliked-- and I've tried so hard to win 
Leslie's friendship.
You have won it, Mistress Blythe. Don't you go 
cherishing any foolish notion that Leslie don't like 
you. If she didn't she wouldn't have anything to do 
with you, much less chumming with you as she does. I 
know Leslie Moore too well not to be sure of that.
The first time I ever saw her, driving her geese down 
the hill on the day I came to Four Winds, she looked at 
me with the same expression,persisted Anne. "I felt 
iteven in the midst of my admiration of her beauty. 
She looked at me resentfully--she didindeedCaptain 
Jim." 
The resentment must have been about something else, 
Mistress Blythe, and you jest come in for a share of it 
because you happened past. Leslie DOES take sullen 
spells now and again, poor girl. I can't blame her, 
when I know what she has to put up with. I don't know 
why it's permitted. The doctor and I have talked a lot 
abut the origin of evil, but we haven't quite found out 
all about it yet. There's a vast of onunderstandable 
things in life, ain't there, Mistress Blythe? 
Sometimes things seem to work out real proper-like, 
same as with you and the doctor. And then again they 
all seem to go catawampus. There's Leslie, so clever 
and beautiful you'd think she was meant for a queen, 
and instead she's cooped up over there, robbed of 
almost everything a woman'd value, with no prospect 
except waiting on Dick Moore all her life. Though, 
mind you, Mistress Blythe, I daresay she'd choose her 
life now, such as it is, rather than the life she 
lived with Dick before he went away. THAT'S something 
a clumsy old sailor's tongue mustn't meddle with. But 
you've helped Leslie a lot--she's a different creature 
since you come to Four Winds. Us old friends see the 
difference in her, as you can't. Miss Cornelia and me 
was talking it over the other day, and it's one of the 
mighty few p'ints that we see eye to eye on. So jest 
you throw overboard any idea of her not liking you.
Anne could hardly discard it completelyfor there were 
undoubtedly times when she feltwith an instinct that 
was not to be combated by reasonthat Leslie harbored 
a queerindefinable resentment towards her. At times
this secret consciousness marred the delight of their 
comradeship; at others it was almost forgotten; but 
Anne always felt the hidden thorn was thereand might 
prick her at any moment. She felt a cruel sting from 
it on the day when she told Leslie of what she hoped 
the spring would bring to the little house of dreams. 
Leslie looked at her with hardbitterunfriendly 
eyes. 
So you are to have THAT, too,she said in a choked 
voice. And without another word she had turned and 
gone across the fields homeward. Anne was deeply hurt; 
for the moment she felt as if she could never like 
Leslie again. But when Leslie came over a few 
evenings later she was so pleasantso friendlyso 
frankand wittyand winsomethat Anne was charmed 
into forgiveness and forgetfulness. Onlyshe never 
mentioned her darling hope to Leslie again; nor did 
Leslie ever refer to it. But one eveningwhen late 
winter was listening for the word of springshe came 
over to the little house for a twilight chat; and when 
she went away she left a smallwhite box on the table. 
Anne found it after she was gone and opened it 
wonderingly. In it was a tiny white dress of exquisite 
workmanship-- delicate embroiderywonderful tucking
sheer loveliness. Every stitch in it was handwork; and 
the little frills of lace at neck and sleeves were of 
real Valenciennes. Lying on it was a card--"with 
Leslie's love." 
What hours of work she must have put on it,said 
Anne. "And the material must have cost more than she 
could really afford. It is very sweet of her." 
But Leslie was brusque and curt when Anne thanked her
and again the latter felt thrown back upon herself. 
Leslie's gift was not alone in the little house. Miss 
Cornelia hadfor the time beinggiven up sewing for 
unwantedunwelcome eighth babiesand fallen to sewing 
for a very much wanted first onewhose welcome would 
leave nothing to be desired. Philippa Blake and Diana 
Wright each sent a marvellous garment; and Mrs. Rachel 
Lynde sent severalin which good material and honest 
stitches took the place of embroidery and frills. Anne 
herself made manydesecrated by no touch of machinery
spending over them the happiest hours of the happy 
winter. 
Captain Jim was the most frequent guest of the little 
houseand none was more welcome. Every day Anne loved 
the simple-souledtrue-hearted old sailor more and 
more. He was as refreshing as a sea breezeas 
interesting as some ancient chronicle. She was never 
tired of listening to his storiesand his quaint 
remarks and comments were a continual delight to her. 
Captain Jim was one of those rare and interesting 
people who "never speak but they say something." The 
milk of human kindness and the wisdom of the serpent 
were mingled in his composition in delightful 
proportions. 
Nothing ever seemed to put Captain Jim out or depress 
him in any way. 
I've kind of contracted a habit of enj'ying things,
he remarked oncewhen Anne had commented on his 
invariable cheerfulness. "It's got so chronic that I 
believe I even enj'y the disagreeable things. It's 
great fun thinking they can't last. `Old rheumatiz' 
says Iwhen it grips me hard`you've GOT to stop 
aching sometime. The worse you are the sooner you'll 
stopmebbe. I'm bound to get the better of you in the 
long runwhether in the body or out of the body.'" 
One nightby the fireside at the light Anne saw 
Captain Jim's "life-book." He needed no coaxing to 
show it and proudly gave it to her to read. 
I writ it to leave to little Joe,he said. "I don't 
like the idea of everything I've done and seen being 
clean forgot after I've shipped for my last v'yage. 
Joehe'll remember itand tell the yarns to his 
children." 
It was an old leather-bound book filled with the record 
of his voyages and adventures. Anne thought what a 
treasure trove it would be to a writer. Every sentence 
was a nugget. In itself the book had no literary 
merit; Captain Jim's charm of storytelling failed him 
when he came to pen and ink; he could only jot roughly 
down the outline of his famous talesand both spelling 
and grammar were sadly askew. But Anne felt that if 
anyone possessed of the gift could take that simple 
record of a braveadventurous lifereading between 
the bald lines the tales of dangers staunchly faced and 
duty manfully donea wonderful story might be made 
from it. Rich comedy and thrilling tragedy were both 
lying hidden in Captain Jim's "life-book waiting for 
the touch of the master hand to waken the laughter and 
grief and horror of thousands. 
Anne said something of this to Gilbert as they walked 
home. 
Why don't you try your hand at it yourselfAnne?" 
Anne shook her head. 
 No. I only wish I could. But it's not in the power 
of my gift. You know what my forte is, Gilbert--the 
fanciful, the fairylike, the pretty. To write Captain 
Jim's life-book as it should be written one should be a 
master of vigorous yet subtle style, a keen 
psychologist, a born humorist and a born tragedian. A 
rare combination of gifts is needed. Paul might do it 
if he were older. Anyhow, I'm going to ask him to come 
down next summer and meet Captain Jim.
Come to this shore,wrote Anne to Paul. "I am 
afraid you cannot find here Nora or the Golden Lady or 
the Twin Sailors; but you will find one old sailor who 
can tell you wonderful stories." 
Paulhowever wrote backsaying regretfully that he 
could not come that year. He was going abroad for two 
year's study. 
When I return I'll come to Four Winds, dear Teacher,
he wrote. 
But meanwhile, Captain Jim is growing old,said 
Annesorrowfullyand there is nobody to write his 
life-book.
CHAPTER 18 
SPRING DAYS 
The ice in the harbor grew black and rotten in the 
March suns; in April there were blue waters and a 
windywhite-capped gulf again; and again the Four 
Winds light begemmed the twilights. 
I'm so glad to see it once more,said Anneon the 
first evening of its reappearance. "I've missed it so 
all winter. The northwestern sky has seemed blank and 
lonely without it." 
The land was tender with brand-newgolden-greenbaby 
leaves. There was an emerald mist on the woods beyond 
the Glen. The seaward valleys were full of fairy mists 
at dawn. 
Vibrant winds came and went with salt foam in their 
breath. The sea laughed and flashed and preened and 
alluredlike a beautifulcoquettish woman. The 
herring schooled and the fishing village woke to life. 
The harbor was alive with white sails making for the 
channel. The ships began to sail outward and inward 
again. 
On a spring day like this,said AnneI know 
exactly what my soul will feel like on the resurrection 
morning.
There are times in spring when I sorter feel that I 
might have been a poet if I'd been caught young,
remarked Captain Jim. "I catch myself conning over old 
lines and verses I heard the schoolmaster reciting 
sixty years ago. They don't trouble me at other times. 
Now I feel as if I had to get out on the rocks or the 
fields or the water and spout them." 
Captain Jim had come up that afternoon to bring Anne a 
load of shells for her gardenand a little bunch of 
sweet-grass which he had found in a ramble over the 
sand dunes. 
It's getting real scarce along this shore now,he 
said. "When I was a boy there was a-plenty of it. But 
now it's only once in a while you'll find a plot--and 
never when you're looking for it. You jest have to 
stumble on it--you're walking along on the sand hills
never thinking of sweet-grass--and all at once the air 
is full of sweetness-- and there's the grass under your 
feet. I favor the smell of sweet-grass. It always 
makes me think of my mother." 
She was fond of it?asked Anne. 
Not that I knows on. Dunno's she ever saw any 
sweet-grass. No, it's because it has a kind of 
motherly perfume--not too young, you 
understand--something kind of seasoned and wholesome 
and dependable--jest like a mother. The schoolmaster's 
bride always kept it among her handkerchiefs. You 
might put that little bunch among yours, Mistress 
Blythe. I don't like these boughten scents-- but a 
whiff of sweet-grass belongs anywhere a lady does.
Anne had not been especially enthusiastic over the idea 
of surrounding her flower beds with quahog shells; as a 
decoration they did not appeal to her on first thought. 
But she would not have hurt Captain Jim's feelings for 
anything; so she assumed a virtue she did not at first 
feeland thanked him heartily. And when Captain Jim 
had proudly encircled every bed with a rim of the big
milk-white shellsAnne found to her surprise that she 
liked the effect. On a town lawnor even up at the 
Glenthey would not have been in keepingbut herein 
the old-fashionedsea-bound garden of the little house 
of dreamsthey BELONGED. 
They DO look nice,she said sincerely. 
The schoolmaster's bride always had cowhawks round her 
beds,said Captain Jim. "She was a master hand with 
flowers. She LOOKED at 'em--and touched 'em--SO--and 
they grew like mad. Some folks have that knack--I 
reckon you have ittooMistress Blythe." 
Oh, I don't know--but I love my garden, and I love 
working in it. To potter with green, growing things, 
watching each day to see the dear, new sprouts come up, 
is like taking a hand in creation, I think. Just now 
my garden is like faith--the substance of things hoped 
for. But bide a wee.
It always amazes me to look at the little, wrinkled 
brown seeds and think of the rainbows in 'em,said 
Captain Jim. "When I ponder on them seeds I don't find 
it nowise hard to believe that we've got souls that'll 
live in other worlds. You couldn't hardly believe 
there was life in them tiny thingssome no bigger than 
grains of dustlet alone color and scentif you 
hadn't seen the miraclecould you?" 
Annewho was counting her days like silver beads on a 
rosarycould not now take the long walk to the 
lighthouse or up the Glen road. But Miss Cornelia and 
Captain Jim came very often to the little house. Miss 
Cornelia was the joy of Anne's and Gilbert's existence. 
They laughed side-splittingly over her speeches after 
every visit. When Captain Jim and she happened to 
visit the little house at the same time there was much 
sport for the listening. They waged wordy warfareshe 
attackinghe defending. Anne once reproached the 
Captain for his baiting of Miss Cornelia. 
Oh, I do love to set her going, Mistress Blythe,
chuckled the unrepentant sinner. "It's the greatest 
amusement I have in life. That tongue of hers would 
blister a stone. And you and that young dog of a 
doctor enj'y listening to her as much as I do." 
Captain Jim came along another evening to bring Anne 
some mayflowers. The garden was full of the moist
scented air of a maritime spring evening. There was a 
milk-white mist on the edge of the seawith a young 
moon kissing itand a silver gladness of stars over 
the Glen. The bell of the church across the harbor was 
ringing dreamily sweet. The mellow chime drifted 
through the dusk to mingle with the soft spring-moan of 
the sea. Captain Jim's mayflowers added the last 
completing touch to the charm of the night. 
I haven't seen any this spring, and I've missed 
them,said Anneburying her face in them. 
They ain't to be found around Four Winds, only in the 
barrens away behind the Glen up yander. I took a 
little trip today to the Land-of-nothing-to-do, and 
hunted these up for you. I reckon they're the last 
you'll see this spring, for they're nearly done.
How kind and thoughtful you are, Captain Jim. Nobody 
else-- not even Gilbert--with a shake of her head at 
him--"remembered that I always long for mayflowers in 
spring." 
Well, I had another errand, too--I wanted to take Mr. 
Howard back yander a mess of trout. He likes one 
occasional, and it's all I can do for a kindness he did 
me once. I stayed all the afternoon and talked to him. 
He likes to talk to me, though he's a highly eddicated 
man and I'm only an ignorant old sailor, because he's 
one of the folks that's GOT to talk or they're 
miserable, and he finds listeners scarce around here. 
The Glen folks fight shy of him because they think he's 
an infidel. He ain't that far gone exactly--few men 
is, I reckon--but he's what you might call a heretic. 
Heretics are wicked, but they're mighty int'resting. 
It's jest that they've got sorter lost looking for 
God, being under the impression that He's hard to 
find--which He ain't never. Most of 'em blunder to Him 
after awhile, I guess. I don't think listening to Mr. 
Howard's arguments is likely to do me much harm. Mind 
you, I believe what I was brought up to believe. It 
saves a vast of bother--and back of it all, God is 
good. The trouble with Mr. Howard is that he's a 
leetle TOO clever. He thinks that he's bound to live 
up to his cleverness, and that it's smarter to thrash 
out some new way of getting to heaven than to go by the 
old track the common, ignorant folks is travelling. 
But he'll get there sometime all right, and then he'll 
laugh at himself.
Mr. Howard was a Methodist to begin with,said Miss 
Corneliaas if she thought he had not far to go from 
that to heresy. 
Do you know, Cornelia,said Captain Jim gravely
I've often thought that if I wasn't a Presbyterian I'd 
be a Methodist.
Oh, well,conceded Miss Corneliaif you weren't a 
Presbyterian it wouldn't matter much what you were. 
Speaking of heresy, reminds me, doctor--I've brought 
back that book you lent me--that Natural Law in the 
Spiritual World--I didn't read more'n a third of it. I 
can read sense, and I can read nonsense, but that book 
is neither the one nor the other.
It IS considered rather heretical in some quarters,
admitted Gilbertbut I told you that before you took 
it, Miss Cornelia.
Oh, I wouldn't have minded its being heretical. I can 
stand wickedness, but I can't stand foolishness,said 
Miss Cornelia calmlyand with the air of having said 
the last thing there was to say about Natural Law. 
Speaking of books, A Mad Love come to an end at last 
two weeks ago,remarked Captain Jim musingly. "It 
run to one hundred and three chapters. When they got 
married the book stopped right offso I reckon their 
troubles were all over. It's real nice that that's the 
way in books anyhowisn't iteven if 'tistn't so 
anywhere else?" 
I never read novels,said Miss Cornelia. "Did you 
hear how Geordie Russell was todayCaptain Jim?" 
Yes, I called in on my way home to see him. He's 
getting round all right--but stewing in a broth of 
trouble, as usual, poor man. 
'Course he brews up most of it for himself, but I 
reckon that don't make it any easier to bear.
He's an awful pessimist,said Miss Cornelia. 
Well, no, he ain't a pessimist exactly, Cornelia. He 
only jest never finds anything that suits him.
And isn't that a pessimist?
No, no. A pessimist is one who never expects to find 
anything to suit him. Geordie hain't got THAT far 
yet.
You'd find something good to say of the devil himself, 
Jim Boyd.
Well, you've heard the story of the old lady who said 
he was persevering. But no, Cornelia, I've nothing 
good to say of the devil.
Do you believe in him at all?asked Miss Cornelia 
seriously. 
How can you ask that when you know what a good 
Presbyterian I am, Cornelia? How could a Presbyterian 
get along without a devil?
DO you?persisted Miss Cornelia. 
Captain Jim suddenly became grave. 
I believe in what I heard a minister once call `a 
mighty and malignant and INTELLIGENT power of evil 
working in the universe,'he said solemnly. "I do 
THATCornelia. You can call it the devilor the 
`principle of evil' or the Old Scratchor any name 
you like. It's THEREand all the infidels and 
heretics in the world can't argue it awayany more'n 
they can argue God away. It's thereand it's 
working. Butmind youCorneliaI believe it's going 
to get the worst of it in the long run." 
I am sure I hope so,said Miss Cornelianone too 
hopefully. "But speaking of the devilI am positive 
that Billy Booth is possessed by him now. Have you 
heard of Billy's latest performance?" 
No, what was that?
He's gone and burned up his wife's new, brown 
broadcloth suit, that she paid twenty-five dollars for 
in Charlottetown, because he declares the men looked 
too admiring at her when she wore it to church the 
first time. Wasn't that like a man?
Mistress Booth IS mighty pretty, and brown's her 
color,said Captain Jim reflectively. 
Is that any good reason why he should poke her new 
suit into the kitchen stove? Billy Booth is a jealous 
fool, and he makes his wife's life miserable. She's 
cried all the week about her suit. Oh, Anne, I wish I 
could write like you, believe ME. Wouldn't I score 
some of the men round here!
Those Booths are all a mite queer,said Captain Jim. 
Billy seemed the sanest of the lot till he got married 
and then this queer jealous streak cropped out in him. 
His brother Daniel, now, was always odd.
Took tantrums every few days or so and wouldn't get 
out of bed,said Miss Cornelia with a relish. "His 
wife would have to do all the barn work till he got 
over his spell. When he died people wrote her letters 
of condolence; if I'd written anything it would have 
been one of congratulation. Their fatherold Abram 
Boothwas a disgusting old sot. He was drunk at his 
wife's funeraland kept reeling round and hiccuping `I 
didn't dri--i--i--nk much but I feel a--a-- awfully 
que--e--e--r.' I gave him a good jab in the back with 
my umbrella when he came near meand it sobered him up 
until they got the casket out of the house. Young 
Johnny Booth was to have been married yesterdaybut 
he couldn't be because he's gone and got the mumps. 
Wasn't that like a man?" 
How could he help getting the mumps, poor fellow?
I'd poor fellow him, believe ME, if I was Kate Sterns. 
I don't know how he could help getting the mumps, but I 
DO know the wedding supper was all prepared and 
everything will be spoiled before he's well again. 
Such a waste! He should have had the mumps when he was 
a boy.
Come, come, Cornelia, don't you think you're a mite 
unreasonable?
Miss Cornelia disdained to reply and turned instead to 
Susan Bakera grim-facedkind-hearted elderly 
spinster of the Glenwho had been installed as 
maid-of-all-work at the little house for some weeks. 
Susan had been up to the Glen to make a sick calland 
had just returned. 
How is poor old Aunt Mandy tonight?asked Miss 
Cornelia. 
Susan sighed. 
Very poorly--very poorly, Cornelia. I am afraid she 
will soon be in heaven, poor thing!
Oh, surely, it's not so bad as that!exclaimed Miss 
Corneliasympathetically . 
Captain Jim and Gilbert looked at each other. Then 
they suddenly rose and went out. 
There are times,said Captain Jimbetween spasms
when it would be a sin NOT to laugh. Them two 
excellent women!
CHAPTER 19 
DAWN AND DUSK 
In early Junewhen the sand hills were a great glory 
of pink wild rosesand the Glen was smothered in apple 
blossomsMarilla arrived at the little house
accompanied by a black horsehair trunkpatterned with 
brass nailswhich had reposed undisturbed in the Green 
Gables garret for half a century. Susan Bakerwho
during her few weeks' sojourn in the little househad 
come to worship "young Mrs. Doctor as she called 
Anne, with blind fervor, looked rather jealously 
askance at Marilla at first. But as Marilla did not 
try to interfere in kitchen matters, and showed no 
desire to interrupt Susan's ministrations to young Mrs. 
Doctor, the good handmaiden became reconciled to her 
presence, and told her cronies at the Glen that Miss 
Cuthbert was a fine old lady and knew her place. 
One evening, when the sky's limpid bowl was filled with 
a red glory, and the robins were thrilling the golden 
twilight with jubilant hymns to the stars of evening, 
there was a sudden commotion in the little house of 
dreams. Telephone messages were sent up to the Glen, 
Doctor Dave and a white-capped nurse came hastily down, 
Marilla paced the garden walks between the quahog 
shells, murmuring prayers between her set lips, and 
Susan sat in the kitchen with cotton wool in her ears 
and her apron over her head. 
Leslie, looking out from the house up the brook, saw 
that every window of the little house was alight, and 
did not sleep that night. 
The June night was short; but it seemed an eternity to 
those who waited and watched. 
Ohwill it NEVER end?" said Marilla; then she saw 
how grave the nurse and Doctor Dave lookedand she 
dared ask no more questions. Suppose Anne--but Marilla 
could not suppose it. 
Do not tell me,said Susan fiercelyanswering the 
anguish in Marilla's eyesthat God could be so cruel 
as to take that darling lamb from us when we all love 
her so much.
He has taken others as well beloved,said Marilla 
hoarsely. 
But at dawnwhen the rising sun rent apart the mists 
hanging over the sandbarand made rainbows of them
joy came to the little house. Anne was safeand a 
weewhite ladywith her mother's big eyeswas lying 
beside her. Gilberthis face gray and haggard from 
his night's agonycame down to tell Marilla and Susan. 
Thank God,shuddered Marilla. 
Susan got up and took the cotton wool out of her ears. 
Now for breakfast,she said briskly. "I am of the 
opinion that we will all be glad of a bite and sup. 
You tell young Mrs. Doctor not to worry about a single 
thing--Susan is at the helm. You tell her just to 
think of her baby." 
Gilbert smiled rather sadly as he went away. Anneher 
pale face blanched with its baptism of painher eyes 
aglow with the holy passion of motherhooddid not need 
to be told to think of her baby. She thought of 
nothing else. For a few hours she tasted of happiness 
so rare and exquisite that she wondered if the angels 
in heaven did not envy her. 
Little Joyce,she murmuredwhen Marilla came in to 
see the baby. "We planned to call her that if she were 
a girlie. There were so many we would have liked to 
name her for; we couldn't choose between themso we 
decided on Joyce--we can call her Joy for 
short--Joy--it suits so well. OhMarillaI thought I 
was happy before. Now I know that I just dreamed a 
pleasant dream of happiness. THIS is the reality." 
You mustn't talk, Anne--wait till you're stronger,
said Marilla warningly. 
You know how hard it is for me NOT to talk,smiled 
Anne. 
At first she was too weak and too happy to notice that 
Gilbert and the nurse looked grave and Marilla 
sorrowful. Thenas subtlyand coldlyand 
remorselessly as a sea-fog stealing landwardfear 
crept into her heart. Why was not Gilbert gladder? 
Why would he not talk about the baby? Why would they 
not let her have it with her after that first 
heavenly--happy hour? Was--was there anything wrong? 
Gilbert,whispered Anne imploringlythe baby--is 
all right--isn't she? Tell me--tell me.
Gilbert was a long while in turning round; then he bent 
over Anne and looked in her eyes. Marillalistening 
fearfully outside the doorheard a pitiful
heartbroken moanand fled to the kitchen where Susan 
was weeping. 
Oh, the poor lamb--the poor lamb! How can she bear 
it, Miss Cuthbert? I am afraid it will kill her. She 
has been that built up and happy, longing for that 
baby, and planning for it. Cannot anything be done 
nohow, Miss Cuthbert?
I'm afraid not, Susan. Gilbert says there is no hope. 
He knew from the first the little thing couldn't 
live.
And it is such a sweet baby,sobbed Susan. "I never 
saw one so white--they are mostly red or yallow. And 
it opened its big eyes as if it was months old. The 
littlelittle thing! Ohthe pooryoung Mrs. 
Doctor!" 
At sunset the little soul that had come with the 
dawning went awayleaving heartbreak behind it. Miss 
Cornelia took the weewhite lady from the kindly but 
stranger hands of the nurseand dressed the tiny 
waxen form in the beautiful dress Leslie had made for 
it. Leslie had asked her to do that. Then she took it 
back and laid it beside the poorbrokentear-blinded 
little mother. 
The Lord has given and the Lord has taken away, 
dearie,she said through her own tears. "Blessed be 
the name of the Lord." 
Then she went awayleaving Anne and Gilbert alone 
together with their dead. 
The next daythe small white Joy was laid in a velvet 
casket which Leslie had lined with apple-blossomsand 
taken to the graveyard of the church across the harbor. 
Miss Cornelia and Marilla put all the little love-made 
garments awaytogether with the ruffled basket which 
had been befrilled and belaced for dimpled limbs and 
downy head. Little Joy was never to sleep there; she 
had found a coldernarrower bed. 
This has been an awful disappointment to me,sighed 
Miss Cornelia. "I've looked forward to this baby--and 
I did want it to be a girltoo." 
I can only be thankful that Anne's life was spared,
said Marillawith a shiverrecalling those hours of 
darkness when the girl she loved was passing through 
the valley of the shadow. 
Poor, poor lamb! Her heart is broken,said Susan. 
I ENVY Anne,said Leslie suddenly and fiercelyand 
I'd envy her even if she had died! She was a mother 
for one beautiful day. I'd gladly give my life for 
THAT!
I wouldn't talk like that, Leslie, dearie,said Miss 
Cornelia deprecatingly. She was afraid that the 
dignified Miss Cuthbert would think Leslie quite 
terrible. 
Anne's convalescence was longand made bitter for her 
by many things. The bloom and sunshine of the Four 
Winds world grated harshly on her; and yetwhen the 
rain fell heavilyshe pictured it beating so 
mercilessly down on that little grave across the 
harbor; and when the wind blew around the eaves she 
heard sad voices in it she had never heard before. 
Kindly callers hurt hertoowith the well-meant 
platitudes with which they strove to cover the 
nakedness of bereavement. A letter from Phil Blake was 
an added sting. Phil had heard of the baby's birth
but not of its deathand she wrote Anne a 
congratulatory letter of sweet mirth which hurt her 
horribly. 
I would have laughed over it so happily if I had my 
baby,she sobbed to Marilla. "But when I haven't it 
just seems like wanton cruelty--though I know Phil 
wouldn't hurt me for the world. OhMarillaI don't 
see how I can EVER be happy again--EVERYTHING will 
hurt me all the rest of my life." 
Time will help you,said Marillawho was racked 
with sympathy but could never learn to express it in 
other than age-worn formulas. 
It doesn't seem FAIR,said Anne rebelliously. 
Babies are born and live where they are not 
wanted--where they will be neglected-- where they will 
have no chance. I would have loved my baby so--and 
cared for it so tenderly--and tried to give her every 
chance for good. And yet I wasn't allowed to keep 
her.
It was God's will, Anne,said Marillahelpless 
before the riddle of the universe--the WHY of 
undeserved pain. "And little Joy is better off." 
I can't believe THAT,cried Anne bitterly. Then
seeing that Marilla looked shockedshe added 
passionatelyWhy should she be born at all--why 
should any one be born at all--if she's better off 
dead? I DON'T believe it is better for a child to die 
at birth than to live its life out--and love and be 
loved--and enjoy and suffer--and do its work--and 
develop a character that would give it a personality in 
eternity. And how do you know it was God's will? 
Perhaps it was just a thwarting of His purpose by the 
Power of Evil. We can't be expected to be resigned to 
THAT.
Oh, Anne, don't talk so,said Marillagenuinely 
alarmed lest Anne were drifting into deep and dangerous 
waters. "We can't understand--but we must have 
faith--we MUST believe that all is for the best. I 
know you find it hard to think sojust now. But try 
to be brave--for Gilbert's sake. He's so worried about 
you. You aren't getting strong as fast as you 
should." 
Oh, I know I've been very selfish,sighed Anne. "I 
love Gilbert more than ever--and I want to live for his 
sake. But it seems as if part of me was buried over 
there in that little harbor graveyard-- and it hurts so 
much that I'm afraid of life." 
It won't hurt so much always, Anne.
The thought that it may stop hurting sometimes hurts 
me worse than all else, Marilla.
Yes, I know, I've felt that too, about other things. 
But we all love you, Anne. Captain Jim has been up 
every day to ask for you--and Mrs. Moore haunts the 
place--and Miss Bryant spends most of her time, I 
think, cooking up nice things for you. Susan doesn't 
like it very well. She thinks she can cook as well as 
Miss Bryant.
Dear Susan! Oh, everybody has been so dear and good 
and lovely to me, Marilla. I'm not ungrateful--and 
perhaps--when this horrible ache grows a little 
less--I'll find that I can go on living.
CHAPTER 20 
LOST MARGARET 
Anne found that she could go on living; the day came 
when she even smiled again over one of Miss Cornelia's 
speeches. But there was something in the smile that 
had never been in Anne's smile before and would never 
be absent from it again. 
On the first day she was able to go for a drive Gilbert 
took her down to Four Winds Pointand left her there 
while he rowed over the channel to see a patient at the 
fishing village. A rollicking wind was scudding across 
the harbor and the duneswhipping the water into 
white-caps and washing the sandshore with long lines of 
silvery breakers. 
I'm real proud to see you here again, Mistress 
Blythe,said Captain Jim. "Sit down--sit down. I'm 
afeared it's mighty dusty here today--but there's no 
need of looking at dust when you can look at such 
sceneryis there?" 
I don't mind the dust,said Annebut Gilbert says 
I must keep in the open air. I think I'll go and sit 
on the rocks down there.
Would you like company or would you rather be alone?
If by company you mean yours I'd much rather have it 
than be alone,said Annesmiling. Then she sighed. 
She had never before minded being alone. Now she 
dreaded it. When she was alone now she felt so 
dreadfully alone. 
Here's a nice little spot where the wind can't get at 
you,said Captain Jimwhen they reached the rocks. 
I often sit here. It's a great place jest to sit and 
dream.
Oh--dreams,sighed Anne. "I can't dream now
Captain Jim--I'm done with dreams." 
Oh, no, you're not, Mistress Blythe--oh, no, you're 
not,said Captain Jim meditatively. "I know how you 
feel jest now--but if you keep on living you'll get 
glad againand the first thing you know you'll be 
dreaming again--thank the good Lord for it! If it 
wasn't for our dreams they might as well bury us. 
How'd we stand living if it wasn't for our dream of 
immortality? And that's a dream that's BOUND to come 
trueMistress Blythe. You'll see your little Joyce 
again some day." 
But she won't be my baby,said Annewith trembling 
lips. "Ohshe may beas Longfellow says`a fair 
maiden clothed with celestial grace'--but she'll be a 
stranger to me." 
God will manage better'n THAT, I believe,said 
Captain Jim. 
They were both silent for a little time. Then Captain 
Jim said very softly: 
Mistress Blythe, may I tell you about lost Margaret?
Of course,said Anne gently. She did not know who 
lost Margaretwasbut she felt that she was going 
to hear the romance of Captain Jim's life. 
I've often wanted to tell you about her,Captain Jim 
went on. 
Do you know why, Mistress Blythe? It's because I want 
somebody to remember and think of her sometime after 
I'm gone. I can't bear that her name should be 
forgotten by all living souls. And now nobody 
remembers lost Margaret but me.
Then Captain Jim told the story--an oldold forgotten 
storyfor it was over fifty years since Margaret had 
fallen asleep one day in her father's dory and 
drifted--or so it was supposedfor nothing was ever 
certainly known as to her fate--out of the channel
beyond the barto perish in the black thundersquall 
which had come up so suddenly that long-ago summer 
afternoon. But to Captain Jim those fifty years were 
but as yesterday when it is past. 
I walked the shore for months after that,he said 
sadlylooking to find her dear, sweet little body; 
but the sea never give her back to me. But I'll find 
her sometime, Mistress Blythe--I'll find her sometime . 
She's waiting for me. I wish I could tell you jest how 
she looked, but I can't. I've seen a fine, silvery 
mist hanging over the bar at sunrise that seemed like 
her--and then again I've seen a white birch in the 
woods back yander that made me think of her. She had 
pale, brown hair and a little white, sweet face, and 
long slender fingers like yours, Mistress Blythe, only 
browner, for she was a shore girl. Sometimes I wake up 
in the night and hear the sea calling to me in the old 
way, and it seems as if lost Margaret called in it. 
And when there's a storm and the waves are sobbing and 
moaning I hear her lamenting among them. And when they 
laugh on a gay day it's HER laugh--lost Margaret's 
sweet, roguish, little laugh. The sea took her from 
me, but some day I'll find her. Mistress Blythe. It 
can't keep us apart forever.
I am glad you have told me about her,said Anne. "I 
have often wondered why you had lived all your life 
alone." 
I couldn't ever care for anyone else. Lost Margaret 
took my heart with her--out there,said the old 
loverwho had been faithful for fifty years to his 
drowned sweetheart. "You won't mind if I talk a good 
deal about herwill youMistress Blythe? It's a 
pleasure to me--for all the pain went out of her memory 
years ago and jest left its blessing. I know you'll 
never forget herMistress Blythe. And if the years
as I hopebring other little folks to your homeI 
want you to promise me that you'll tell THEM the story 
of lost Margaretso that her name won't be forgotten 
among humankind." 
CHAPTER 21 
BARRIERS SWEPT AWAY
Anne,said Lesliebreaking abruptly a short 
silenceyou don't know how GOOD it is to be sitting 
here with you again--working-- and talking--and being 
silent together.
They were sitting among the blue-eyed grasses on the 
bank of the brook in Anne's garden. The water sparkled 
and crooned past them; the birches threw dappled 
shadows over them; roses bloomed along the walks. The 
sun was beginning to be lowand the air was full of 
woven music. There was one music of the wind in the 
firs behind the houseand another of the waves on the 
barand still another from the distant bell of the 
church near which the weewhite lady slept. Anne 
loved that bellthough it brought sorrowful thoughts 
now. 
She looked curiously at Lesliewho had thrown down her 
sewing and spoken with a lack of restraint that was 
very unusual with her. 
On that horrible night when you were so ill,Leslie 
went onI kept thinking that perhaps we'd have no 
more talks and walks and WORKS together. And I 
realised just what your friendship had come to mean to 
me--just what YOU meant--and just what a hateful little 
beast I had been.
Leslie! Leslie! I never allow anyone to call my 
friends names.
It's true. That's exactly what I am--a hateful little 
beast. There's something I've GOT to tell you, Anne. I 
suppose it will make you despise me, but I MUST confess 
it. Anne, there have been times this past winter and 
spring when I have HATED you.
I KNEW it,said Anne calmly. 
You KNEW it?
Yes, I saw it in your eyes.
 And yet you went on liking me and being my friend.
Well, it was only now and then you hated me, Leslie. 
Between times you loved me, I think.
I certainly did. But that other horrid feeling was 
always there, spoiling it, back in my heart. I kept it 
down--sometimes I forgot it-- but sometimes it would 
surge up and take possession of me. I hated you 
because I ENVIED you--oh, I was sick with envy of you 
at times. You had a dear little home--and love--and 
happiness--and glad dreams--everything I wanted--and 
never had--and never could have. Oh, never could have! 
THAT was what stung. I wouldn't have envied you, if I 
had had any HOPE that life would ever be different for 
me. But I hadn't--I hadn't--and it didn't seem FAIR. 
It made me rebellious--and it hurt me--and so I hated 
you at times. Oh, I was so ashamed of it--I'm dying of 
shame now--but I couldn't conquer it. 
That night, when I was afraid you mightn't live--I 
thought I was going to be punished for my 
wickedness--and I loved you so then. Anne, Anne, I 
never had anything to love since my mother died, except 
Dick's old dog--and it's so dreadful to have nothing to 
love--life is so EMPTY--and there's NOTHING worse than 
emptiness-- and I might have loved you so much--and 
that horrible thing had spoiled it--
Leslie was trembling and growing almost incoherent with 
the violence of her emotion. 
Don't, Leslie,implored Anneoh, don't. I 
understand-- don't talk of it any more.
I must--I must. When I knew you were going to live I 
vowed that I would tell you as soon as you were 
well--that I wouldn't go on accepting your friendship 
and companionship without telling you how unworthy I 
was of it. And I've been so afraid--it would turn you 
against me.
You needn't fear that, Leslie.
Oh, I'm so glad--so glad, Anne.Leslie clasped her 
brownwork-hardened hands tightly together to still 
their shaking. "But I want to tell you everythingnow 
I've begun. You don't remember the first time I saw 
youI suppose--it wasn't that night on the shore--" 
No, it was the night Gilbert and I came home. You 
were driving your geese down the hill. I should think 
I DO remember it! I thought you were so beautiful--I 
longed for weeks after to find out who you were.
I knew who YOU were, although I had never seen either 
of you before. I had heard of the new doctor and his 
bride who were coming to live in Miss Russell's little 
house. I--I hated you that very moment, Anne.
I felt the resentment in your eyes--then I doubted--I 
thought I must be mistaken--because WHY should it be?
It was because you looked so happy. Oh, you'll agree 
with me now that I AM a hateful beast--to hate another 
woman just because she was happy,--and when her 
happiness didn't take anything from me! That was why I 
never went to see you. I knew quite well I ought to 
go--even our simple Four Winds customs demanded that. 
But I couldn't. I used to watch you from my window--I 
could see you and your husband strolling about your 
garden in the evening--or you running down the poplar 
lane to meet him. And it hurt me. And yet in another 
way I wanted to go over. I felt that, if I were not so 
miserable, I could have liked you and found in you what 
I've never had in my life--an intimate, REAL friend of 
my own age. And then you remember that night at the 
shore? You were afraid I would think you crazy. You 
must have thought _I_ was.
No, but I couldn't understand you, Leslie. One moment 
you drew me to you--the next you pushed me back.
I was very unhappy that evening. I had had a hard 
day. Dick had been very--very hard to manage that day. 
Generally he is quite good-natured and easily 
controlled, you know, Anne. But some days he is very 
different. I was so heartsick--I ran away to the shore 
as soon as he went to sleep. It was my only refuge. I 
sat there thinking of how my poor father had ended his 
life, and wondering if I wouldn't be driven to it some 
day. Oh, my heart was full of black thoughts! And 
then you came dancing along the cove like a glad, 
light-hearted child. I--I hated you more then than 
I've ever done since. And yet I craved your 
friendship. The one feeling swayed me one moment; the 
other feeling the next. When I got home that night I 
cried for shame of what you must think of me. But it's 
always been just the same when I came over here. 
Sometimes I'd be happy and enjoy my visit. And at 
other times that hideous feeling would mar it all. 
There were times when everything about you and your 
house hurt me. You had so many dear little things I 
couldn't have. Do you know--it's ridiculous-- but I 
had an especial spite at those china dogs of yours. 
There were times when I wanted to catch up Gog and 
Magog and bang their pert black noses together! Oh, 
you smile, Anne--but it was never funny to me. I would 
come here and see you and Gilbert with your books and 
your flowers, and your household goods, and your little 
family jokes--and your love for each other showing in 
every look and word, even when you didn't know it--and 
I would go home to--you know what I went home to! Oh, 
Anne, I don't believe I'm jealous and envious by 
nature. When I was a girl I lacked many things my 
schoolmates had, but I never cared--I never disliked 
them for it. But I seem to have grown so hateful--
Leslie, dearest, stop blaming yourself. You are NOT 
hateful or jealous or envious. The life you have to 
live has warped you a little, perhaps-but it would have 
ruined a nature less fine and noble than yours. I'm 
letting you tell me all this because I believe it's 
better for you to talk it out and rid your soul of it. 
But don't blame yourself any more.
Well, I won't. I just wanted you to know me as I am. 
That time you told me of your darling hope for the 
spring was the worst of all, Anne. I shall never 
forgive myself for the way I behaved then. I repented 
it with tears. And I DID put many a tender and loving 
thought of you into the little dress I made. But I 
might have known that anything I made could only be a 
shroud in the end.
Now, Leslie, that IS bitter and morbid--put such 
thoughts away. 
I was so glad when you brought the little dress; and 
since I had to lose little Joyce I like to think that 
the dress she wore was the one you made for her when 
you let yourself love me.
Anne, do you know, I believe I shall always love you 
after this. I don't think I'll ever feel that dreadful 
way about you again. Talking it all out seems to have 
done away with it, somehow. It's very strange --and I 
thought it so real and bitter. It's like opening the 
door of a dark room to show some hideous creature 
you've believed to be there--and when the light streams 
in your monster turns out to have been just a shadow, 
vanishing when the light comes. It will never come 
between us again.
No, we are real friends now, Leslie, and I am very 
glad.
I hope you won't misunderstand me if I say something 
else. Anne, I was grieved to the core of my heart when 
you lost your baby; and if I could have saved her for 
you by cutting off one of my hands I would have done 
it. But your sorrow has brought us closer together. 
Your perfect happiness isn't a barrier any longer. Oh, 
don't misunderstand, dearest--I'm NOT glad that your 
happiness isn't perfect any longer--I can say that 
sincerely; but since it isn't, there isn't such a gulf 
between us.
I DO understand that, too, Leslie. Now, we'll just 
shut up the past and forget what was unpleasant in it. 
It's all going to be different. We're both of the race 
of Joseph now. I think you've been wonderful 
--wonderful. And, Leslie, I can't help believing that 
life has something good and beautiful for you yet.
Leslie shook her head. 
No,she said dully. "There isn't any hope. Dick 
will never be better--and even if his memory were to 
come back--ohAnneit would be worseeven worse
than it is now. This is something you can't 
understandyou happy bride. Annedid Miss Cornelia 
ever tell you how I came to marry Dick?" 
Yes.
I'm glad--I wanted you to know--but I couldn't bring 
myself to talk of it if you hadn't known. Anne, it 
seems to me that ever since I was twelve years old life 
has been bitter. Before that I had a happy childhood. 
We were very poor--but we didn't mind. Father was so 
splendid--so clever and loving and sympathetic. We 
were chums as far back as I can remember. And mother 
was so sweet. She was very, very beautiful. I look 
like her, but I am not so beautiful as she was.
Miss Cornelia says you are far more beautiful.
She is mistaken--or prejudiced. I think my figure IS 
better-- mother was slight and bent by hard work--but 
she had the face of an angel. I used just to look up 
at her in worship. We all worshipped her,--father and 
Kenneth and I.
Anne remembered that Miss Cornelia had given her a very 
different impression of Leslie's mother. But had not 
love the truer vision? Stillit WAS selfish of Rose 
West to make her daughter marry Dick Moore. 
Kenneth was my brother,went on Leslie. "OhI 
can't tell you how I loved him. And he was cruelly 
killed. Do you know how?" 
Yes.
Anne, I saw his little face as the wheel went over 
him. He fell on his back. Anne--Anne--I can see it 
now. I shall always see it. Anne, all I ask of heaven 
is that that recollection shall be blotted out of my 
memory. O my God!
Leslie, don't speak of it. I know the story--don't go 
into details that only harrow your soul up 
unavailingly. It WILL be blotted out.
After a moment's struggleLeslie regained a measure of 
self- control. 
Then father's health got worse and he grew 
despondent--his mind became unbalanced--you've heard 
all that, too?
Yes.
After that I had just mother to live for. But I was 
very ambitious. I meant to teach and earn my way 
through college. I meant to climb to the very top--oh, 
I won't talk of that either. It's no use. You know 
what happened. I couldn't see my dear little 
heart-broken mother, who had been such a slave all her 
life, turned out of her home. Of course, I could have 
earned enough for us to live on. But mother COULDN'T 
leave her home. She had come there as a bride--and she 
had loved father so--and all her memories were there. 
Even yet, Anne, when I think that I made her last year 
happy I'm not sorry for what I did. As for Dick--I 
didn't hate him when I married him--I just felt for him 
the indifferent, friendly feeling I had for most of my 
schoolmates. I knew he drank some--but I had never 
heard the story of the girl down at the fishing cove. 
If I had, I COULDN'T have married him, even for 
mother's sake. Afterwards--I DID hate him--but mother 
never knew. She died--and then I was alone. I was 
only seventeen and I was alone. Dick had gone off in 
the Four Sisters. I hoped he wouldn't be home very 
much more. The sea had always been in his blood. I 
had no other hope. Well, Captain Jim brought him home, 
as you know--and that's all there is to say. You know 
me now, Anne--the worst of me--the barriers are all 
down. And you still want to be my friend?
Anne looked up through the birchesat the white 
paper-lantern of a half moon drifting downwards to the 
gulf of sunset. Her face was very sweet. 
I am your friend and you are mine, for always,she 
said. "Such a friend as I never had before. I have 
had many dear and beloved friends--but there is a 
something in youLesliethat I never found in anyone 
else. You have more to offer me in that rich nature of 
yoursand I have more to give you than I had in my 
careless girlhood. We are both women--and friends 
forever." 
They clasped hands and smiled at each other through the 
tears that filled the gray eyes and the blue. 
CHAPTER 22 
MISS CORNELIA ARRANGES MATTERS 
Gilbert insisted that Susan should be kept on at the 
little house for the summer. Anne protested at first. 
Life here with just the two of us is so sweet, 
Gilbert. It spoils it a little to have anyone else. 
Susan is a dear soul, but she is an outsider. It won't 
hurt me to do the work here.
You must take your doctor's advice,said Gilbert. 
There's an old proverb to the effect that shoemakers' 
wives go barefoot and doctors' wives die young. I 
don't mean that it shall be true in my household. You 
will keep Susan until the old spring comes back into 
your step, and those little hollows on your cheeks fill 
out.
You just take it easy, Mrs. Doctor, dear,said 
Susancoming abruptly in. "Have a good time and do 
not worry about the pantry. Susan is at the helm. 
There is no use in keeping a dog and doing your own 
barking. I am going to take your breakfast up to you 
every morning." 
Indeed you are not,laughed Anne. "I agree with 
Miss Cornelia that it's a scandal for a woman who isn't 
sick to eat her breakfast in bedand almost justifies 
the men in any enormities." 
Oh, Cornelia!said Susanwith ineffable contempt. 
I think you have better sense, Mrs. Doctor, dear, than 
to heed what Cornelia Bryant says. I cannot see why 
she must be always running down the men, even if she is 
an old maid. _I_ am an old maid, but you never hear ME 
abusing the men. I like 'em. I would have married one 
if I could. Is it not funny nobody ever asked me to 
marry him, Mrs. Doctor, dear? I am no beauty, but I am 
as good-looking as most of the married women you see. 
But I never had a beau. What do you suppose is the 
reason?
It may be predestination,suggested Annewith 
unearthly solemnity. 
Susan nodded. 
That is what I have often thought, Mrs. Doctor, dear, 
and a great comfort it is. I do not mind nobody 
wanting me if the Almighty decreed it so for His own 
wise purposes. But sometimes doubt creeps in, Mrs. 
Doctor, dear, and I wonder if maybe the Old Scratch has 
not more to do with it than anyone else. I cannot feel 
resigned THEN. But maybe,added Susanbrightening 
upI will have a chance to get married yet. I often 
and often think of the old verse my aunt used to 
repeat: 
There never was a goose so gray but sometime soon or 
late Some honest gander came her way and took her for 
his mate! 
A woman cannot ever be sure of not being married till 
she is buried, Mrs. Doctor, dear, and meanwhile I will 
make a batch of cherry pies. I notice the doctor 
favors 'em, and I DO like cooking for a man who 
appreciates his victuals.
Miss Cornelia dropped in that afternoonpuffing a 
little. 
I don't mind the world or the devil much, but the 
flesh DOES rather bother me,she admitted. "You 
always look as cool as a cucumberAnnedearie. Do I 
smell cherry pie? If I doask me to stay to tea. 
Haven't tasted a cherry pie this summer. My cherries 
have all been stolen by those scamps of Gilman boys 
from the Glen." 
Now, now, Cornelia,remonstrated Captain Jimwho 
had been reading a sea novel in a corner of the living 
roomyou shouldn't say that about those two poor, 
motherless Gilman boys, unless you've got certain 
proof. Jest because their father ain't none too honest 
isn't any reason for calling them thieves. It's more 
likely it's been the robins took your cherries. 
They're turrible thick this year.
Robins!said Miss Cornelia disdainfully. "Humph! 
Two- legged robinsbelieve ME!" 
Well, most of the Four Winds robins ARE constructed on 
that principle,said Captain Jim gravely. 
Miss Cornelia stared at him for a moment. Then she 
leaned back in her rocker and laughed long and 
ungrudgingly. 
Well, you HAVE got one on me at last, Jim Boyd, I'll 
admit. Just look how pleased he is, Anne, dearie, 
grinning like a Chessy-cat. As for the robins' legs if 
robins have great, big, bare, sunburned legs, with 
ragged trousers hanging on 'em, such as I saw up in my 
cherry tree one morning at sunrise last week, I'll beg 
the Gilman boys' pardon. By the time I got down they 
were gone. I couldn't understand how they had 
disappeared so quick, but Captain Jim has enlightened 
me. They flew away, of course.
Captain Jim laughed and went awayregretfully 
declining an invitation to stay to supper and partake 
of cherry pie. 
I'm on my way to see Leslie and ask her if she'll take 
a boarder,Miss Cornelia resumed. "I'd a letter 
yesterday from a Mrs. Daly in Torontowho boarded a 
spell with me two years ago. She wanted me to take a 
friend of hers for the summer. His name is Owen Ford
and he's a newspaper manand it seems he's a grandson 
of the schoolmaster who built this house. John 
Selwyn's oldest daughter married an Ontario man named 
Fordand this is her son. He wants to see the old 
place his grandparents lived in. He had a bad spell of 
typhoid in the spring and hasn't got rightly over it
so his doctor has ordered him to the sea. He doesn't 
want to go to the hotel--he just wants a quiet home 
place. I can't take himfor I have to be away in 
August. I've been appointed a delegate to the W.F.M.S. 
convention in Kingsport and I'm going. I don't know 
whether Leslie'll want to be bothered with himeither
but there's no one else. If she can't take him he'll 
have to go over the harbor." 
When you've seen her come back and help us eat our 
cherry pies,said Anne. "Bring Leslie and Dicktoo
if they can come. And so you're going to Kingsport? 
What a nice time you will have. I must give you a 
letter to a friend of mine there--Mrs. Jonas Blake." 
I've prevailed on Mrs. Thomas Holt to go with me,
said Miss Cornelia complacently. "It's time she had a 
little holidaybelieve ME. She has just about worked 
herself to death. Tom Holt can crochet beautifully
but he can't make a living for his family. He never 
seems to be able to get up early enough to do any work
but I notice he can always get up early to go fishing. 
Isn't that like a man?" 
Anne smiled. She had learned to discount largely Miss 
Cornelia's opinions of the Four Winds men. Otherwise 
she must have believed them the most hopeless 
assortment of reprobates and ne'er-do-wells in the 
worldwith veritable slaves and martyrs for wives. 
This particular Tom Holtfor exampleshe knew to be a 
kind husbanda much loved fatherand an excellent 
neighbor. If he were rather inclined to be lazy
liking better the fishing he had been born for than the 
farming he had notand if he had a harmless 
eccentricity for doing fancy worknobody save Miss 
Cornelia seemed to hold it against him. His wife was 
a "hustler who gloried in hustling; his family got a 
comfortable living off the farm; and his strapping sons 
and daughters, inheriting their mother's energy, were 
all in a fair way to do well in the world. There was 
not a happier household in Glen St. Mary than the 
Holts'. 
Miss Cornelia returned satisfied from the house up the 
brook. 
Leslie's going to take him she announced. She 
jumped at the chance. She wants to make a little money 
to shingle the roof of her house this falland she 
didn't know how she was going to manage it. I expect 
Captain Jim'll be more than interested when he hears 
that a grandson of the Selwyns' is coming here. Leslie 
said to tell you she hankered after cherry piebut she 
couldn't come to tea because she has to go and hunt up 
her turkeys. They've strayed away. But she saidif 
there was a piece leftfor you to put it in the pantry 
and she'd run over in the cat's lightwhen prowling's 
in orderto get it. You don't knowAnnedearie
what good it did my heart to hear Leslie send you a 
message like thatlaughing like she used to long ago. 
There's a great change come over her lately. She 
laughs and jokes like a girland from her talk I 
gather she's here real often." 
Every day--or else I'm over there,said Anne. "I 
don't know what I'd do without Leslieespecially just 
now when Gilbert is so busy. He's hardly ever home 
except for a few hours in the wee sma's. He's really 
working himself to death. So many of the over-harbor 
people send for him now." 
They might better be content with their own doctor,
said Miss Cornelia. "Though to be sure I can't blame 
themfor he's a Methodist. Ever since Dr. Blythe 
brought Mrs. Allonby round folks think he can raise the 
dead. I believe Dr. Dave is a mite jealous--just like 
a man. He thinks Dr. Blythe has too many new-fangled 
notions! `Well' I says to him`it was a new-fangled 
notion saved Rhoda Allonby. If YOU'D been attending 
her she'd have diedand had a tombstone saying it had 
pleased God to take her away.' OhI DO like to speak 
my mind to Dr. Dave! He's bossed the Glen for years
and he thinks he's forgotten more than other people 
ever knew. Speaking of doctorsI wish Dr. Blythe'd 
run over and see to that boil on Dick Moore's neck. 
It's getting past Leslie's skill. I'm sure I don't 
know what Dick Moore wants to start in having boils 
for--as if he wasn't enough trouble without that!" 
Do you know, Dick has taken quite a fancy to me,
said Anne. "He follows me round like a dogand smiles 
like a pleased child when I notice him." 
Does it make you creepy?
Not at all. I rather like poor Dick Moore. He seems 
so pitiful and appealing, somehow.
You wouldn't think him very appealing if you'd see him 
on his cantankerous days, believe ME. But I'm glad you 
don't mind him-- it's all the nicer for Leslie. She'll 
have more to do when her boarder comes. I hope he'll 
be a decent creature. You'll probably like him--he's a 
writer.
I wonder why people so commonly suppose that if two 
individuals are both writers they must therefore be 
hugely congenial,said Annerather scornfully. 
Nobody would expect two blacksmiths to be violently 
attracted toward each other merely because they were 
both blacksmiths.
Neverthelessshe looked forward to the advent of Owen 
Ford with a pleasant sense of expectation. If he were 
young and likeable he might prove a very pleasant 
addition to society in Four Winds. The latch-string of 
the little house was always out for the race of Joseph. 
CHAPTER 23 
OWEN FORD COMES 
One evening Miss Cornelia telephoned down to Anne. 
The writer man has just arrived here. I'm going to 
drive him down to your place, and you can show him the 
way over to Leslie's. It's shorter than driving round 
by the other road, and I'm in a mortal hurry. The 
Reese baby has gone and fallen into a pail of hot water 
at the Glen, and got nearly scalded to death and they 
want me right off--to put a new skin on the child, I 
presume. Mrs. Reese is always so careless, and then 
expects other people to mend her mistakes. You won't 
mind, will you, dearie? His trunk can go down 
tomorrow.
Very well,said Anne. "What is he likeMiss 
Cornelia?" 
You'll see what he's like outside when I take him 
down. As for what he's like inside only the Lord who 
made him knows THAT. I'm not going to say another 
word, for every receiver in the Glen is down.
Miss Cornelia evidently can't find much fault with Mr. 
Ford's looks, or she would find it in spite of the 
receivers,said Anne. "I conclude thereforeSusan
that Mr. Ford is rather handsome than otherwise." 
Well, Mrs. Doctor, dear, I DO enjoy seeing a 
well-looking man,said Susan candidly. "Had I not 
better get up a snack for him? There is a strawberry 
pie that would melt in your mouth." 
No, Leslie is expecting him and has his supper ready. 
Besides, I want that strawberry pie for my own poor 
man. He won't be home till late, so leave the pie and 
a glass of milk out for him, Susan.
That I will, Mrs. Doctor, dear. Susan is at the helm. 
After all, it is better to give pie to your own men 
than to strangers, who may be only seeking to devour, 
and the doctor himself is as well-looking a man as you 
often come across.
When Owen Ford came Anne secretly admittedas Miss 
Cornelia towed him inthat he was very "well-looking" 
indeed. He was tall and broad-shoulderedwith thick
brown hairfinely-cut nose and chinlarge and 
brilliant dark-gray eyes. 
And did you notice his ears and his teeth, Mrs. 
Doctor, dear?queried Susan later on. "He has got 
the nicest-shaped ears I ever saw on a man's head. I 
am choice about ears. When I was young I was scared 
that I might have to marry a man with ears like flaps. 
But I need not have worriedfor never a chance did I 
have with any kind of ears." 
Anne had not noticed Owen Ford's earsbut she did see 
his teethas his lips parted over them in a frank and 
friendly smile. Unsmilinghis face was rather sad and 
absent in expressionnot unlike the melancholy
inscrutable hero of Anne's own early dreams; but mirth 
and humor and charm lighted it up when he smiled. 
Certainlyon the outsideas Miss Cornelia saidOwen 
Ford was a very presentable fellow. 
You cannot realise how delighted I am to be here, Mrs. 
Blythe,he saidlooking around him with eager
interested eyes. "I have an odd feeling of coming 
home. My mother was born and spent her childhood 
hereyou know. She used to talk a great deal to me of 
her old home. I know the geography of it as well as of 
the one I lived inandof courseshe told me the 
story of the building of the houseand of my 
grandfather's agonised watch for the Royal William. I 
had thought that so old a house must have vanished 
years agoor I should have come to see it before 
this." 
Old houses don't vanish easily on this enchanted 
coast,smiled Anne. "This is a `land where all 
things always seem the same'-- nearly alwaysat least. 
John Selwyn's house hasn't even been much changedand 
outside the rose-bushes your grandfather planted for 
his bride are blooming this very minute." 
How the thought links me with them! With your leave I 
must explore the whole place soon.
Our latch-string will always be out for you,
promised Anne. "And do you know that the old sea 
captain who keeps the Four Winds light knew John Selwyn 
and his bride well in his boyhood? He told me their 
story the night I came here--the third bride of the old 
house." 
Can it be possible? This IS a discovery. I must hunt 
him up.
It won't be difficult; we are all cronies of Captain 
Jim. He will be as eager to see you as you could be to 
see him. Your grandmother shines like a star in his 
memory. But I think Mrs. Moore is expecting you. I'll 
show you our `cross-lots' road.
Anne walked with him to the house up the brookover a 
field that was as white as snow with daisies. A 
boat-load of people were singing far across the harbor. 
The sound drifted over the water like faintunearthly 
music wind-blown across a starlit sea. The big light 
flashed and beaconed. Owen Ford looked around him with 
satisfaction. 
And so this is Four Winds,he said. "I wasn't 
prepared to find it quite so beautifulin spite of all 
mother's praises. What colors-- what scenery--what 
charm! I shall get as strong as a horse in no time. 
And if inspiration comes from beautyI should 
certainly be able to begin my great Canadian novel 
here." 
You haven't begun it yet?asked Anne. 
Alack-a-day, no. I've never been able to get the 
right central idea for it. It lurks beyond me--it 
allures--and beckons--and recedes-- I almost grasp it 
and it is gone. Perhaps amid this peace and 
loveliness, I shall be able to capture it. Miss Bryant 
tells me that you write.
Oh, I do little things for children. I haven't done 
much since I was married. And--I have no designs on a 
great Canadian novel,laughed Anne. "That is quite 
beyond me." 
Owen Ford laughed too. 
I dare say it is beyond me as well. All the same I 
mean to have a try at it some day, if I can ever get 
time. A newspaper man doesn't have much chance for 
that sort of thing. I've done a good deal of short 
story writing for the magazines, but I've never had the 
leisure that seems to be necessary for the writing of a 
book. With three months of liberty I ought to make a 
start, though--if I could only get the necessary motif 
for it--the SOUL of the book.
An idea whisked through Anne's brain with a suddenness 
that made her jump. But she did not utter itfor they 
had reached the Moore house. As they entered the yard 
Leslie came out on the veranda from the side door
peering through the gloom for some sign of her expected 
guest. She stood just where the warm yellow light 
flooded her from the open door. She wore a plain dress 
of cheapcream-tinted cotton voilewith the usual 
girdle of crimson. Leslie was never without her touch 
of crimson. She had told Anne that she never felt 
satisfied without a gleam of red somewhere about her
if it were only a flower. To Anneit always seemed to 
symbolise Leslie's glowingpent-up personality
denied all expression save in that flaming glint. 
Leslie's dress was cut a little away at the neck and 
had short sleeves. Her arms gleamed like ivory-tinted 
marble. Every exquisite curve of her form was 
outlined in soft darkness against the light. Her hair 
shone in it like flame. Beyond her was a purple sky
flowering with stars over the harbor. 
Anne heard her companion give a gasp. Even in the dusk 
she could see the amazement and admiration on his face. 
Who is that beautiful creature?he asked. 
That is Mrs. Moore,said Anne. "She is very lovely
isn't she?" 
I--I never saw anything like her,he answered
rather dazedly. "I wasn't prepared--I didn't 
expect--good heavensone DOESN'T expect a goddess for 
a landlady ! Whyif she were clothed in a gown of 
sea-purplewith a rope of amethysts in her hairshe 
would be a veritable sea-queen. And she takes in 
boarders!" 
Even goddesses must live,said Anne. "And Leslie 
isn't a goddess. She's just a very beautiful womanas 
human as the rest of us. Did Miss Bryant tell you 
about Mr. Moore?" 
Yes,--he's mentally deficient, or something of the 
sort, isn't he? But she said nothing about Mrs. Moore, 
and I supposed she'd be the usual hustling country 
housewife who takes in boarders to earn an honest 
penny.
Well, that's just what Leslie is doing,said Anne 
crisply. "And it isn't altogether pleasant for her
either. I hope you won't mind Dick. If you doplease 
don't let Leslie see it. It would hurt her horribly. 
He's just a big babyand sometimes a rather annoying 
one." 
Oh, I won't mind him. I don't suppose I'll be much in 
the house anyhow, except for meals. But what a shame 
it all is! Her life must be a hard one.
It is. But she doesn't like to be pitied.
Leslie had gone back into the house and now met them at 
the front door. She greeted Owen Ford with cold 
civilityand told him in a business-like tone that his 
room and his supper were ready for him. Dickwith a 
pleased grinshambled upstairs with the valiseand 
Owen Ford was installed as an inmate of the old house 
among the willows. 
CHAPTER 24 
THE LIFE-BOOK OF CAPTAIN JIM 
I have a little brown cocoon of an idea that may 
possibly expand into a magnificent moth of 
fulfilment,Anne told Gilbert when she reached home. 
He had returned earlier than she had expectedand was 
enjoying Susan's cherry pie. Susan herself hovered in 
the backgroundlike a rather grim but beneficent 
guardian spiritand found as much pleasure in watching 
Gilbert eat pie as he did in eating it.
What is your idea?he asked. 
I sha'n't tell you just yet--not till I see if I can 
bring the thing about.
What sort of a chap is Ford?
Oh, very nice, and quite good-looking.
Such beautiful ears, doctor, dear,interjected Susan 
with a relish. 
He is about thirty or thirty-five, I think, and he 
meditates writing a novel. His voice is pleasant and 
his smile delightful, and he knows how to dress. He 
looks as if life hadn't been altogether easy for him, 
somehow.
Owen Ford came over the next evening with a note to 
Anne from Leslie; they spent the sunset time in the 
garden and then went for a moonlit sail on the harbor
in the little boat Gilbert had set up for summer 
outings. They liked Owen immensely and had that 
feeling of having known him for many years which 
distinguishes the freemasonry of the house of Joseph. 
He is as nice as his ears, Mrs. Doctor, dear,said 
Susanwhen he had gone. He had told Susan that he had 
never tasted anything like her strawberry shortcake and 
Susan's susceptible heart was his forever. 
He has got a way with him.she reflectedas she 
cleared up the relics of the supper. "It is real queer 
he is not marriedfor a man like that could have 
anybody for the asking. Wellmaybe he is like meand 
has not met the right one yet." 
Susan really grew quite romantic in her musings as she 
washed the supper dishes. 
Two nights later Anne took Owen Ford down to Four Winds 
Point to introduce him to Captain Jim. The clover 
fields along the harbor shore were whitening in the 
western windand Captain Jim had one of his finest 
sunsets on exhibition. He himself had just returned 
from a trip over the harbor. 
I had to go over and tell Henry Pollack he was dying. 
Everybody else was afraid to tell him. They expected 
he'd take on turrible, for he's been dreadful 
determined to live, and been making no end of plans for 
the fall. His wife thought he oughter be told and that 
I'd be the best one to break it to him that he couldn't 
get better. Henry and me are old cronies--we sailed in 
the Gray Gull for years together. Well, I went over 
and sat down by Henry's bed and I says to him, says I, 
jest right out plain and simple, for if a thing's got 
to be told it may as well be told first as last, says 
I, `Mate, I reckon you've got your sailing orders this 
time,' I was sorter quaking inside, for it's an awful 
thing to have to tell a man who hain't any idea he's 
dying that he is. But lo and behold, Mistress Blythe, 
Henry looks up at me, with those bright old black eyes 
of his in his wizened face and says, says he, `Tell me 
something I don't know, Jim Boyd, if you want to give 
me information. I've known THAT for a week.' I was 
too astonished to speak, and Henry, he chuckled. `To 
see you coming in here,' says he, `with your face as 
solemn as a tombstone and sitting down there with your 
hands clasped over your stomach, and passing me out a 
blue-mouldy old item of news like that! It'd make a 
cat laugh, Jim Boyd,' says he. `Who told you?' says I, 
stupid like. `Nobody,' says he. `A week ago Tuesday 
night I was lying here awake--and I jest knew. I'd 
suspicioned it before, but then I KNEW. I've been 
keeping up for the wife's sake. And I'd LIKE to have 
got that barn built, for Eben'll never get it right. 
But anyhow, now that you've eased your mind, Jim, put 
on a smile and tell me something interesting,' Well, 
there it was. They'd been so scared to tell him and he 
knew it all the time. Strange how nature looks out for 
us, ain't it, and lets us know what we should know when 
the time comes? Did I never tell you the yarn about 
Henry getting the fish hook in his nose, Mistress 
Blythe?
No.
Well, him and me had a laugh over it today. It 
happened nigh unto thirty years ago. Him and me and 
several more was out mackerel fishing one day. It was 
a great day--never saw such a school of mackerel in 
the gulf--and in the general excitement Henry got quite 
wild and contrived to stick a fish hook clean through 
one side of his nose. Well, there he was; there was 
barb on one end and a big piece of lead on the other, 
so it couldn't be pulled out. We wanted to take him 
ashore at once, but Henry was game; he said he'd be 
jiggered if he'd leave a school like that for anything 
short of lockjaw; then he kept fishing away, hauling in 
hand over fist and groaning between times. Fin'lly the 
school passed and we come in with a load; I got a file 
and begun to try to file through that hook. I tried to 
be as easy as I could, but you should have heard 
Henry--no, you shouldn't either. It was well no ladies 
were around. Henry wasn't a swearing man, but he'd 
heard some few matters of that sort along shore in his 
time, and he fished 'em all out of his recollection and 
hurled 'em at me. Fin'lly he declared he couldn't 
stand it and I had no bowels of compassion. So we 
hitched up and I drove him to a doctor in 
Charlottetown, thirty-five miles--there weren't none 
nearer in them days--with that blessed hook still 
hanging from his nose. When we got there old Dr. Crabb 
jest took a file and filed that hook jest the same as 
I'd tried to do, only he weren't a mite particular 
about doing it easy!
Captain Jim's visit to his old friend had revived many 
recollections and he was now in the full tide of 
reminiscences. 
Henry was asking me today if I remembered the time old 
Father Chiniquy blessed Alexander MacAllister's boat. 
Another odd yarn--and true as gospel. I was in the 
boat myself. We went out, him and me, in Alexander 
MacAllister's boat one morning at sunrise. Besides, 
there was a French boy in the boat--Catholic of course. 
You know old Father Chiniquy had turned Protestant, so 
the Catholics hadn't much use for him. Well, we sat 
out in the gulf in the broiling sun till noon, and not 
a bite did we get. When we went ashore old Father 
Chiniquy had to go, so he said in that polite way of 
his, `I'm very sorry I cannot go out with you dis 
afternoon, Mr. MacAllister, but I leave you my 
blessing. You will catch a t'ousand dis afternoon. 
`Well, we did not catch a thousand, but we caught 
exactly nine hundred and ninety-nine--the biggest catch 
for a small boat on the whole north shore that summer. 
Curious, wasn't it? Alexander MacAllister, he says to 
Andrew Peters, `Well, and what do you think of Father 
Chiniquy now?' `Vell,' growled Andrew, `I t'ink de old 
devil has got a blessing left yet.' Laws, how Henry 
did laugh over that today!
Do you know who Mr. Ford is, Captain Jim?asked 
Anneseeing that Captain Jim's fountain of 
reminiscence had run out for the present. "I want you 
to guess." 
Captain Jim shook his head. 
I never was any hand at guessing, Mistress Blythe, and 
yet somehow when I come in I thought, `Where have I 
seen them eyes before?'--for I HAVE seen 'em.
Think of a September morning many years ago,said 
Annesoftly. "Think of a ship sailing up the 
harbor--a ship long waited for and despaired of. Think 
of the day the Royal William came in and the first 
look you had at the schoolmaster's bride." 
Captain Jim sprang up. 
They're Persis Selwyn's eyes,he almost shouted. 
You can't be her son--you must be her--
Grandson; yes, I am Alice Selwyn's son.
Captain Jim swooped down on Owen Ford and shook his 
hand over again. 
Alice Selwyn's son! Lord, but you're welcome! Many's 
the time I've wondered where the descendants of the 
schoolmaster were living. I knew there was none on the 
Island. Alice--Alice--the first baby ever born in that 
little house. No baby ever brought more joy! I've 
dandled her a hundred times. It was from my knee she 
took her first steps alone. Can't I see her mother's 
face watching her--and it was near sixty years ago. Is 
she living yet?
No, she died when I was only a boy.
Oh, it doesn't seem right that I should be living to 
hear that,sighed Captain Jim. "But I'm heart-glad 
to see you. It's brought back my youth for a little 
while. You don't know yet what a boon THAT is. 
Mistress Blythe here has the trick--she does it quite 
often for me." 
Captain Jim was still more excited when he discovered 
that Owen Ford was what he called a "real writing 
man." He gazed at him as at a superior being. 
Captain Jim knew that Anne wrotebut he had never 
taken that fact very seriously. Captain Jim thought 
women were delightful creatureswho ought to have the 
voteand everything else they wantedbless their 
hearts; but he did not believe they could write. 
Jest look at A Mad Love,he would protest. "A woman 
wrote that and jest look at it--one hundred and three 
chapters when it could all have been told in ten. A 
writing woman never knows when to stop; that's the 
trouble. The p'int of good writing is to know when to 
stop." 
Mr. Ford wants to hear some of your stories, Captain 
Jimsaid Anne. "Tell him the one about the captain 
who went crazy and imagined he was the Flying 
Dutchman." 
This was Captain Jim's best story. It was a compound 
of horror and humorand though Anne had heard it 
several times she laughed as heartily and shivered as 
fearsomely over it as Mr. Ford did. Other tales 
followedfor Captain Jim had an audience after his own 
heart. He told how his vessel had been run down by a 
steamer; how he had been boarded by Malay pirates; how 
his ship had caught fire; how he helped a political 
prisoner escape from a South African republic; how he 
had been wrecked one fall on the Magdalens and stranded 
there for the winter; how a tiger had broken loose on 
board ship; how his crew had mutinied and marooned him 
on a barren island--these and many other talestragic 
or humorous or grotesquedid Captain Jim relate. The 
mystery of the seathe fascination of far landsthe 
lure of adventurethe laughter of the world--his 
hearers felt and realised them all. Owen Ford 
listenedwith his head on his handand the First 
Mate purring on his kneehis brilliant eyes fastened 
on Captain Jim's ruggedeloquent face. 
Won't you let Mr. Ford see your life-book, Captain 
Jim?asked Annewhen Captain Jim finally declared 
that yarn-spinning must end for the time. 
Oh, he don't want to be bothered with THAT,
protested Captain Jimwho was secretly dying to show 
it. 
I should like nothing better than to see it, Captain 
Boyd,said Owen. "If it is half as wonderful as your 
tales it will be worth seeing." 
With pretended reluctance Captain Jim dug his life-book 
out of his old chest and handed it to Owen. 
I reckon you won't care to wrastle long with my old 
hand o' write. I never had much schooling,he 
observed carelessly. "Just wrote that there to amuse 
my nephew Joe. He's always wanting stories. Comes 
here yesterday and says to mereproachful-likeas I 
was lifting a twenty-pound codfish out of my boat
`Uncle Jimain't a codfish a dumb animal?' I'd been 
a-telling himyou seethat he must be real kind to 
dumb animalsand never hurt 'em in any way. I got out 
of the scrape by saying a codfish was dumb enough but 
it wasn't an animalbut Joe didn't look satisfiedand 
I wasn't satisfied myself. You've got to be mighty 
careful what you tell them little critters. THEY can 
see through you." 
While talkingCaptain Jim watched Owen Ford from the 
corner of his eye as the latter examined the life-book; 
and presently observing that his guest was lost in its 
pageshe turned smilingly to his cupboard and 
proceeded to make a pot of tea. Owen Ford separated 
himself from the life-bookwith as much reluctance as 
a miser wrenches himself from his goldlong enough to 
drink his teaand then returned to it hungrily. 
Oh, you can take that thing home with you if you want 
to,said Captain Jimas if the "thing" were not his 
most treasured possession. "I must go down and pull my 
boat up a bit on the skids. There's a wind coming. 
Did you notice the sky tonight?
Mackerel skies and mares' tails Make tall ships 
carry short sails."
Owen Ford accepted the offer of the life-book gladly. 
On their way home Anne told him the story of lost 
Margaret. 
That old captain is a wonderful old fellow,he said. 
What a life he has led! Why, the man had more 
adventures in one week of his life than most of us have 
in a lifetime. Do you really think his tales are all 
true?
I certainly do. I am sure Captain Jim could not tell 
a lie; and besides, all the people about here say that 
everything happened as he relates it. There used to be 
plenty of his old shipmates alive to corroborate him. 
He's one of the last of the old type of P.E. Island 
sea-captains. They are almost extinct now.
CHAPTER 25 
THE WRITING OF THE BOOK 
Owen Ford came over to the little house the next 
morning in a state of great excitement. "Mrs. Blythe
this is a wonderful book--absolutely wonderful. If I 
could take it and use the material for a book I feel 
certain I could make the novel of the year out of it. 
Do you suppose Captain Jim would let me do it?" 
Let you! I'm sure he would be delighted,cried 
Anne. "I admit that it was what was in my head when I 
took you down last night. Captain Jim has always been 
wishing he could get somebody to write his life-book 
properly for him." 
Will you go down to the Point with me this evening, 
Mrs. Blythe? I'll ask him about that life-book myself, 
but I want you to tell him that you told me the story 
of lost Margaret and ask him if he will let me use it 
as a thread of romance with which to weave the stories 
of the life-book into a harmonious whole.
Captain Jim was more excited than ever when Owen Ford 
told him of his plan. At last his cherished dream was 
to be realized and his "life-book" given to the world. 
He was also pleased that the story of lost Margaret 
should be woven into it. 
It will keep her name from being forgotten,he said 
wistfully. 
That's why I want it put in.
We'll collaborate,cried Owen delightedly. "You 
will give the soul and I the body. Ohwe'll write a 
famous book between usCaptain Jim. And we'll get 
right to work." 
And to think my book is to be writ by the 
schoolmaster's grandson!exclaimed Captain Jim. 
Lad, your grandfather was my dearest friend. I 
thought there was nobody like him. I see now why I had 
to wait so long. It couldn't be writ till the right 
man come. You BELONG here--you've got the soul of this 
old north shore in you-- you're the only one who COULD 
write it.
It was arranged that the tiny room off the living room 
at the lighthouse should be given over to Owen for a 
workshop. It was necessary that Captain Jim should be 
near him as he wrotefor consultation upon many 
matters of sea-faring and gulf lore of which Owen was 
quite ignorant. 
He began work on the book the very next morningand 
flung himself into it heart and soul. As for Captain 
Jimhe was a happy man that summer. He looked upon 
the little room where Owen worked as a sacred shrine. 
Owen talked everything over with Captain Jimbut he 
would not let him see the manuscript. 
You must wait until it is published,he said. "Then 
you'll get it all at once in its best shape." 
He delved into the treasures of the life-book and used 
them freely. He dreamed and brooded over lost Margaret 
until she became a vivid reality to him and lived in 
his pages. As the book progressed it took possession 
of him and he worked at it with feverish eagerness. He 
let Anne and Leslie read the manuscript and criticise 
it; and the concluding chapter of the bookwhich the 
criticslater onwere pleased to call idyllicwas 
modelled upon a suggestion of Leslie's. 
Anne fairly hugged herself with delight over the 
success of her idea. 
I knew when I looked at Owen Ford that he was the very 
man for it,she told Gilbert. "Both humor and 
passion were in his faceand thattogether with the 
art of expressionwas just what was necessary for the 
writing of such a book. As Mrs. Rachel would sayhe 
was predestined for the part." 
Owen Ford wrote in the mornings. The afternoons were 
generally spent in some merry outing with the Blythes. 
Leslie often wenttoofor Captain Jim took charge of 
Dick frequentlyin order to set her free. They went 
boating on the harbor and up the three pretty rivers 
that flowed into it; they had clambakes on the bar and 
mussel-bakes on the rocks; they picked strawberries on 
the sand-dunes; they went out cod-fishing with Captain 
Jim; they shot plover in the shore fields and wild 
ducks in the cove--at leastthe men did. In the 
evenings they rambled in the low-lyingdaisiedshore 
fields under a golden moonor they sat in the living 
room at the little house where often the coolness of 
the sea breeze justified a driftwood fireand talked 
of the thousand and one things which happyeager
clever young people can find to talk about. 
Ever since the day on which she had made her confession 
to Anne Leslie had been a changed creature. There was 
no trace of her old coldness and reserveno shadow of 
her old bitterness. The girlhood of which she had been 
cheated seemed to come back to her with the ripeness of 
womanhood; she expanded like a flower of flame and 
perfume; no laugh was readier than hersno wit 
quickerin the twilight circles of that enchanted 
summer. When she could not be with them all felt that 
some exquisite savor was lacking in their intercourse. 
Her beauty was illumined by the awakened soul within
as some rosy lamp might shine through a flawless vase 
of alabaster. There were hours when Anne's eyes seemed 
to ache with the splendor of her. As for Owen Ford
the "Margaret" of his bookalthough she had the soft 
brown hair and elfin face of the real girl who had 
vanished so long agopillowed where lost Atlantis 
sleeps,had the personality of Leslie Mooreas it 
was revealed to him in those halcyon days at Four Winds 
Harbor. 
All in allit was a never-to-be-forgotten summer--one 
of those summers which come seldom into any lifebut 
leave a rich heritage of beautiful memories in their 
going--one of those summers whichin a fortunate 
combination of delightful weatherdelightful friends 
and delightful doingscome as near to perfection as 
anything can come in this world. 
Too good to last,Anne told herself with a little 
sighon the September day when a certain nip in the 
wind and a certain shade of intense blue on the gulf 
water said that autumn was hard by. 
That evening Owen Ford told them that he had finished 
his book and that his vacation must come to an end. 
I have a good deal to do to it yet--revising and 
pruning and so forth,he saidbut in the main it's 
done. I wrote the last sentence this morning. If I 
can find a publisher for it it will probably be out 
next summer or fall.
Owen had not much doubt that he would find a publisher. 
He knew that he had written a great book--a book that 
would score a wonderful success--a book that would 
LIVE. He knew that it would bring him both fame and 
fortune; but when he had written the last line of it he 
had bowed his head on the manuscript and so sat for a 
long time. And his thoughts were not of the good work 
he had done. 
CHAPTER 26 
OWEN FORD'S CONFESSION 
I'm so sorry Gilbert is away,said Anne. "He had to 
go--Allan Lyons at the Glen has met with a serious 
accident. He will not likely be home till very late. 
But he told me to tell you he'd be up and over early 
enough in the morning to see you before you left. It's 
too provoking. Susan and I had planned such a nice 
little jamboree for your last night here." 
She was sitting beside the garden brook on the little 
rustic seat Gilbert had built. Owen Ford stood before 
herleaning against the bronze column of a yellow 
birch. He was very pale and his face bore the marks of 
the preceding sleepless night. Anneglancing up at 
himwondered ifafter allhis summer had brought him 
the strength it should. Had he worked too hard over 
his book? She remembered that for a week he had not 
been looking well. 
I'm rather glad the doctor is away,said Owen 
slowly. "I wanted to see you aloneMrs. Blythe. 
There is something I must tell somebodyor I think it 
will drive me mad. I've been trying for a week to look 
it in the face--and I can't. I know I can trust 
you--andbesidesyou will understand. A woman with 
eyes like yours always understands. You are one of the 
folks people instinctively tell things to. Mrs. 
BlytheI love Leslie. LOVE her! That seems too weak 
a word!" 
His voice suddenly broke with the suppressed passion of 
his utterance. He turned his head away and hid his 
face on his arm. His whole form shook. Anne sat 
looking at himpale and aghast. She had never 
thought of this! And yet--how was it she had never 
thought of it? It now seemed a natural and inevitable 
thing. She wondered at her own blindness. 
But--but--things like this did not happen in Four 
Winds. Elsewhere in the world human passions might set 
at defiance human conventions and laws--but not HERE
surely. Leslie had kept summer boarders off and on for 
ten yearsand nothing like this had happened. But 
perhaps they had not been like Owen Ford; and the 
vividLIVING Leslie of this summer was not the cold
sullen girl of other years. OhSOMEBODY should have 
thought of this! Why hadn't Miss Cornelia thought of 
it? Miss Cornelia was always ready enough to sound the 
alarm where men were concerned. Anne felt an 
unreasonable resentment against Miss Cornelia. Then 
she gave a little inward groan. No matter who was to 
blame the mischief was done. And Leslie--what of 
Leslie? It was for Leslie Anne felt most concerned. 
Does Leslie know this, Mr. Ford?she asked quietly. 
No--no,--unless she has guessed it. You surely don't 
think I'd be cad and scoundrel enough to tell her, Mrs. 
Blythe. I couldn't help loving her--that's all--and my 
misery is greater than I can bear.
Does SHE care?asked Anne. The moment the question 
crossed her lips she felt that she should not have 
asked it. Owen Ford answered it with overeager 
protest. 
No--no, of course not. But I could make her care if 
she were free--I know I could.
She does care--and he knows it,thought Anne. Aloud 
she saidsympathetically but decidedly: 
But she is not free, Mr. Ford. And the only thing you 
can do is to go away in silence and leave her to her 
own life.
I know--I know,groaned Owen. He sat down on the 
grassy bank and stared moodily into the amber water 
beneath him. "I know there's nothing to do--nothing 
but to say conventionally`Good- byeMrs. Moore. 
Thank you for all your kindness to me this summer' 
just as I would have said it to the sonsybustling
keen-eyed housewife I expected her to be when I came. 
Then I'll pay my board money like any honest boarder 
and go! Ohit's very simple. No doubt--no 
perplexity--a straight road to the end of the world! 
And I'll walk it--you needn't fear that I won'tMrs. 
Blythe. But it would be easier to walk over red-hot 
ploughshares." 
Anne flinched with the pain of his voice. And there 
was so little she could say that would be adequate to 
the situation. Blame was out of the question--advice 
was not needed--sympathy was mocked by the man's stark 
agony. She could only feel with him in a maze of 
compassion and regret. Her heart ached for Leslie! 
Had not that poor girl suffered enough without this? 
It wouldn't be so hard to go and leave her if she were 
only happy,resumed Owen passionately. "But to think 
of her living death--to realise what it is to which I 
do leave her! THAT is the worst of all. I would give 
my life to make her happy--and I can do nothing even to 
help her--nothing. She is bound forever to that poor 
wretch--with nothing to look forward to but growing old 
in a succession of emptymeaninglessbarren years. 
It drives me mad to think of it. But I must go through 
my lifenever seeing herbut always knowing what she 
is enduring. It's hideous--hideous!" 
It is very hard,said Anne sorrowfully. "We--her 
friends here--all know how hard it is for her." 
And she is so richly fitted for life,said Owen 
rebelliously. 
Her beauty is the least of her dower--and she is the 
most beautiful woman I've ever known. That laugh of 
hers! I've angled all summer to evoke that laugh, just 
for the delight of hearing it. And her eyes-- they are 
as deep and blue as the gulf out there. I never saw 
such blueness--and gold! Did you ever see her hair 
down, Mrs. Blythe?
No.
I did--once. I had gone down to the Point to go 
fishing with Captain Jim but it was too rough to go 
out, so I came back. She had taken the opportunity of 
what she expected to be an afternoon alone to wash her 
hair, and she was standing on the veranda in the 
sunshine to dry it. It fell all about her to her feet 
in a fountain of living gold. When she saw me she 
hurried in, and the wind caught her hair and swirled it 
all around her--Danae in her cloud. Somehow, just then 
the knowledge that I loved her came home to me--and 
realised that I had loved her from the moment I first 
saw her standing against the darkness in that glow of 
light. And she must live on here--petting and soothing 
Dick, pinching and saving for a mere existence, while I 
spend my life longing vainly for her, and debarred, by 
that very fact, from even giving her the little help a 
friend might. I walked the shore last night, almost 
till dawn, and thrashed it all out over and over again. 
And yet, in spite of everything, I can't find it in my 
heart to be sorry that I came to Four Winds. It seems 
to me that, bad as everything is, it would be still 
worse never to have known Leslie. It's burning, 
searing pain to love her and leave her--but not to have 
loved her is unthinkable. I suppose all this sounds 
very crazy--all these terrible emotions always do sound 
foolish when we put them into our inadequate words. 
They are not meant to be spoken--only felt and endured. 
I shouldn't have spoken--but it has helped-- some. At 
least, it has given me strength to go away respectably 
tomorrow morning, without making a scene. You'll write 
me now and then, won't you, Mrs. Blythe, and give me 
what news there is to give of her?
Yes,said Anne. "OhI'm so sorry you are 
going--we'll miss you so--we've all been such friends! 
If it were not for this you could come back other 
summers. Perhapseven yet--by-and-by--when you've 
forgottenperhaps--" 
I shall never forget--and I shall never come back to 
Four Winds,said Owen briefly. 
Silence and twilight fell over the garden. Far away 
the sea was lapping gently and monotonously on the bar. 
The wind of evening in the poplars sounded like some 
sadweirdold rune--some broken dream of old 
memories. A slender shapely young aspen rose up before 
them against the fine maize and emerald and paling rose 
of the western skywhich brought out every leaf and 
twig in darktremulouselfin loveliness. 
Isn't that beautiful?said Owenpointing to it with 
the air of a man who puts a certain conversation behind 
him. 
It's so beautiful that it hurts me,said Anne 
softly. "Perfect things like that always did hurt 
me--I remember I called it `the queer ache' when I was 
a child. What is the reason that pain like this seems 
inseparable from perfection? Is it the pain of 
finality--when we realise that there can be nothing 
beyond but retrogression?" 
Perhaps,said Owen dreamilyit is the prisoned 
infinite in us calling out to its kindred infinite as 
expressed in that visible perfection.
You seem to have a cold in the head. Better rub some 
tallow on your nose when you go to bed,said Miss 
Corneliawho had come in through the little gate 
between the firs in time to catch Owen's last remark. 
Miss Cornelia liked Owen; but it was a matter of 
principle with her to visit any "high-falutin" 
language from a man with a snub. 
Miss Cornelia personated the comedy that ever peeps 
around the corner at the tragedy of life. Annewhose 
nerves had been rather strainedlaughed hysterically
and even Owen smiled. Certainlysentiment and 
passion had a way of shrinking out of sight in Miss 
Cornelia's presence. And yet to Anne nothing seemed 
quite as hopeless and dark and painful as it had seemed 
a few moments before. But sleep was far from her eyes 
that night. 
CHAPTER 27 
ON THE SAND BAR 
Owen Ford left Four Winds the next morning. In the 
evening Anne went over to see Lesliebut found nobody. 
The house was locked and there was no light in any 
window. It looked like a home left soulless. Leslie 
did not run over on the following day--which Anne 
thought a bad sign. 
Gilbert having occasion to go in the evening to the 
fishing coveAnne drove with him to the Point
intending to stay awhile with Captain Jim. But the 
great lightcutting its swathes through the fog of the 
autumn eveningwas in care of Alec Boyd and Captain 
Jim was away. 
What will you do?asked Gilbert. "Come with me?" 
I don't want to go to the cove--but I'll go over the 
channel with you, and roam about on the sand shore till 
you come back. The rock shore is too slippery and grim 
tonight.
Alone on the sands of the bar Anne gave herself up to 
the eerie charm of the night. It was warm for 
Septemberand the late afternoon had been very foggy; 
but a full moon had in part lessened the fog and 
transformed the harbor and the gulf and the surrounding 
shores into a strangefantasticunreal world of pale 
silver mistthrough which everything loomed 
phantom-like. Captain Josiah Crawford's black 
schooner sailing down the channelladen with potatoes 
for Bluenose portswas a spectral ship bound for a far 
uncharted landever recedingnever to be reached. 
The calls of unseen gulls overhead were the cries of 
the souls of doomed seamen. The little curls of foam 
that blew across the sand were elfin things stealing up 
from the sea-caves. The biground-shouldered 
sand-dunes were the sleeping giants of some old 
northern tale. The lights that glimmered palely across 
the harbor were the delusive beacons on some coast of 
fairyland. Anne pleased herself with a hundred fancies 
as she wandered through the mist. It was 
delightful--romantic-- mysterious to be roaming here 
alone on this enchanted shore. 
But was she alone? Something loomed in the mist before 
her--took shape and form--suddenly moved towards her 
across the wave-rippled sand. 
Leslie!exclaimed Anne in amazement. "Whatever are 
you doing--HERE--tonight?" 
If it comes to that, whatever are YOU doing here?
said Leslietrying to laugh. The effort was a 
failure. She looked very pale and tired; but the love 
locks under her scarlet cap were curling about her 
face and eyes like little sparkling rings of gold. 
I'm waiting for Gilbert--he's over at the Cove. I 
intended to stay at the light, but Captain Jim is 
away.
Well, _I_ came here because I wanted to walk--and 
walk--and WALK,said Leslie restlessly. "I couldn't 
on the rock shore--the tide was too high and the rocks 
prisoned me. I had to come here--or I should have gone 
madI think. I rowed myself over the channel in 
Captain Jim's flat. I've been here for an hour. 
Come--come--let us walk. I can't stand still. Oh
Anne!" 
Leslie, dearest, what is the trouble?asked Anne
though she knew too well already. 
I can't tell you--don't ask me . I wouldn't mind your 
knowing-- I wish you did know--but I can't tell you--I 
can't tell anyone. I've been such a fool, Anne--and 
oh, it hurts so terribly to be a fool. There's nothing 
so painful in the world.
She laughed bitterly. Anne slipped her arm around her. 
Leslie, is it that you have learned to care for Mr. 
Ford?
Leslie turned herself about passionately. 
How did you know?she cried. "Annehow did you 
know? Ohis it written in my face for everyone to 
see? Is it as plain as that?" 
No, no. I--I can't tell you how I knew. It just came 
into my mind, somehow. Leslie, don't look at me like 
that!
Do you despise me?demanded Leslie in a fiercelow 
tone. "Do you think I'm wicked--unwomanly? Or do you 
think I'm just plain fool?" 
I don't think you any of those things. Come, dear, 
let's just talk it over sensibly, as we might talk over 
any other of the great crises of life. You've been 
brooding over it and let yourself drift into a morbid 
view of it. You know you have a little tendency to do 
that about everything that goes wrong, and you promised 
me that you would fight against it.
But--oh, it's so--so shameful,murmured Leslie. "To 
love him--unsought--and when I'm not free to love 
anybody." 
There's nothing shameful about it. But I'm very sorry 
that you have learned to care for Owen, because, as 
things are, it will only make you more unhappy.
I didn't LEARN to care,said Lesliewalking on and 
speaking passionately. "If it had been like that I 
could have prevented it. I never dreamed of such a 
thing until that daya week agowhen he told me he 
had finished his book and must soon go away. Then-then 
I knew. I felt as if someone had struck me a 
terrible blow. I didn't say anything--I couldn't 
speak--but I don't know what I looked like. I'm so 
afraid my face betrayed me. OhI would die of shame 
if I thought he knew--or suspected." 
Anne was miserably silenthampered by her deductions 
from her conversation with Owen. Leslie went on 
feverishlyas if she found relief in speech. 
I was so happy all this summer, Anne--happier than I 
ever was in my life. I thought it was because 
everything had been made clear between you and me, and 
that it was our friendship which made life seem so 
beautiful and full once more. And it WAS, in part--but 
not all--oh, not nearly all. I know now why everything 
was so different. And now it's all over--and he has 
gone. How can I live, Anne? When I turned back into 
the house this morning after he had gone the solitude 
struck me like a blow in the face.
It won't seem so hard by and by, dear,said Anne
who always felt the pain of her friends so keenly that 
she could not speak easyfluent words of comforting. 
Besidesshe remembered how well- meant speeches had 
hurt her in her own sorrow and was afraid. 
Oh, it seems to me it will grow harder all the time,
said Leslie miserably. "I've nothing to look forward 
to. Morning will come after morning--and he will not 
come back--he will never come back. Ohwhen I think 
that I will never see him again I feel as if a great 
brutal hand had twisted itself among my heartstrings
and was wrenching them. Oncelong agoI dreamed of 
love--and I thought it must be beautiful--and NOW--its 
like THIS. When he went away yesterday morning he was 
so cold and indifferent. He said `Good- byeMrs. 
Moore' in the coldest tone in the world--as if we had 
not even been friends--as if I meant absolutely nothing 
to him. I know I don't--I didn't want him to 
care--but he MIGHT have been a little kinder." 
Oh, I wish Gilbert would come,thought Anne. She 
was racked between her sympathy for Leslie and the 
necessity of avoiding anything that would betray Owen's 
confidence. She knew why his good-bye had been so 
cold--why it could not have the cordiality that their 
good-comradeship demanded--but she could not tell 
Leslie. 
I couldn't help it, Anne--I couldn't help it,said 
poor Leslie. 
I know that.
Do you blame me so very much?
I don't blame you at all.
And you won't--you won't tell Gilbert?
 Leslie! Do you think I would do such a thing?
Oh, I don't know--you and Gilbert are such CHUMS. I 
don't see how you could help telling him everything.
Everything about my own concerns--yes. But not my 
friends' secrets.
I couldn't have HIM know. But I'm glad YOU know. I 
would feel guilty if there were anything I was ashamed 
to tell you. I hope Miss Cornelia won't find out. 
Sometimes I feel as if those terrible, kind brown eyes 
of hers read my very soul. Oh, I wish this mist would 
never lift--I wish I could just stay in it forever, 
hidden away from every living being. I don't see how I 
can go on with life. This summer has been so full. I 
never was lonely for a moment. Before Owen came there 
used to be horrible moments--when I had been with you 
and Gilbert--and then had to leave you. You two would 
walk away together and I would walk away ALONE. After 
Owen came he was always there to walk home with me--we 
would laugh and talk as you and Gilbert were 
doing--there were no more lonely, envious moments for 
me. And NOW! Oh, yes, I've been a fool. Let's have 
done talking about my folly. I'll never bore you with 
it again.
Here is Gilbert, and you are coming back with us,
said Annewho had no intention of leaving Leslie to 
wander alone on the sand-bar on such a night and in 
such a mood. "There's plenty of room in our boat for 
threeand we'll tie the flat on behind." 
Oh, I suppose I must reconcile myself to being the odd 
one again,said poor Leslie with another bitter 
laugh. "Forgive meAnne--that was hateful. I ought 
to be thankful--and I AM--that I have two good friends 
who are glad to count me in as a third. Don't mind my 
hateful speeches. I just seem to be one great pain all 
over and everything hurts me." 
Leslie seemed very quiet tonight, didn't she?said 
Gilbertwhen he and Anne reached home. "What in the 
world was she doing over there on the bar alone?" 
Oh, she was tired--and you know she likes to go to the 
shore after one of Dick's bad days.
What a pity she hadn't met and married a fellow like 
Ford long ago,ruminated Gilbert. "They'd have made 
an ideal couplewouldn't they?" 
For pity's sake, Gilbert, don't develop into a 
match-maker. It's an abominable profession for a 
man,cried Anne rather sharplyafraid that Gilbert 
might blunder on the truth if he kept on in this 
strain. 
Bless us, Anne-girl, I'm not matchmaking,protested 
Gilbertrather surprised at her tone. "I was only 
thinking of one of the might-have-beens." 
Well, don't. It's a waste of time,said Anne. Then 
she added suddenly: 
Oh, Gilbert, I wish everybody could be as happy as we 
are.
CHAPTER 28 
ODDS AND ENDS 
I've been reading obituary notices,said Miss 
Cornelialaying down the Daily Enterprise and taking 
up her sewing. 
The harbor was lying black and sullen under a dour 
November sky; the wetdead leaves clung drenched and 
sodden to the window sills; but the little house was 
gay with firelight and spring-like with Anne's ferns 
and geraniums. 
It's always summer here, Anne,Leslie had said one 
day; and all who were the guests of that house of 
dreams felt the same. 
The Enterprise seems to run to obituaries these 
days,quoth Miss Cornelia. "It always has a couple 
of columns of themand I read every line. It's one of 
my forms of recreationespecially when there's some 
original poetry attached to them. Here's a choice 
sample for you: 
She's gone to be with her MakerNever more to 
roam. She used to play and sing with joy The 
song of HomeSweet Home. 
Who says we haven't any poetical talent on the Island! 
Have you ever noticed what heaps of good people die
Annedearie? It's kind of pitiful. Here's ten 
obituariesand every one of them saints and models
even the men. Here's old Peter Stimsonwho has `left 
a large circle of friends to mourn his untimely loss.' 
LordAnnedeariethat man was eightyand everybody 
who knew him had been wishing him dead these thirty 
years. Read obituaries when you're blueAnne
dearie--especially the ones of folks you know. If 
you've any sense of humor at all they'll cheer you up
believe ME. I just wish _I_ had the writing of the 
obituaries of some people. Isn't `obituary' an awful 
ugly word? This very Peter I've been speaking of had a 
face exactly like one. I never saw it but I thought of 
the word OBITUARY then and there. There's only one 
uglier word that I know ofand that's RELICT. Lord
AnnedearieI may be an old maidbut there's this 
comfort in it--I'll never be any man's `relict.'" 
It IS an ugly word,said Annelaughing. "Avonlea 
graveyard was full of old tombstones `sacred to the 
memory of So-and-SoRELICT of the late So-and-So.' It 
always made me think of something worn out and moth 
eaten. Why is it that so many of the words connected 
with death are so disagreeable? I do wish that the 
custom of calling a dead body `the remains' could be 
abolished. I positively shiver when I hear the 
undertaker say at a funeral`All who wish to see the 
remains please step this way.' It always gives me the 
horrible impression that I am about to view the scene 
of a cannibal feast." 
Well, all I hope,said Miss Cornelia calmlyis 
that when I'm dead nobody will call me `our departed 
sister.' I took a scunner at this 
sister-and-brothering business five years ago when 
there was a travelling evangelist holding meetings at 
the Glen. I hadn't any use for him from the start. I 
felt in my bones that there was something wrong with 
him. And there was. Mind you, he was pretending to be 
a Presbyterian--PresbyTARian, HE called it--and all the 
time he was a Methodist. He brothered and sistered 
everybody. He had a large circle of relations, that 
man had. He clutched my hand fervently one night, and 
said imploringly, `My DEAR sister Bryant, are you a 
Christian?' I just looked him over a bit, and then I 
said calmly, `The only brother I ever had, MR. Fiske, 
was buried fifteen years ago, and I haven't adopted any 
since. As for being a Christian, I was that, I hope 
and believe, when you were crawling about the floor in 
petticoats.' THAT squelched him, believe ME. Mind 
you, Anne dearie, I'm not down on all evangelists. 
We've had some real fine, earnest men, who did a lot of 
good and made the old sinners squirm. But this 
Fiske-man wasn't one of them. I had a good laugh all 
to myself one evening. Fiske had asked all who were 
Christians to stand up. _I_ didn't, believe me! I 
never had any use for that sort of thing. But most of 
them did, and then he asked all who wanted to be 
Christians to stand up. Nobody stirred for a spell, so 
Fiske started up a hymn at the top of his voice. Just 
in front of me poor little Ikey Baker was sitting in 
the Millison pew. He was a home boy, ten years old, 
and Millison just about worked him to death. The poor 
little creature was always so tired he fell asleep 
right off whenever he went to church or anywhere he 
could sit still for a few minutes. He'd been sleeping 
all through the meeting, and I was thankful to see the 
poor child getting a rest, believe ME. Well, when 
Fiske's voice went soaring skyward and the rest joined 
in, poor Ikey wakened with a start. He thought it was 
just an ordinary singing and that everybody ought to 
stand up, so he scrambled to his feet mighty quick, 
knowing he'd get a combing down from Maria Millison for 
sleeping in meeting. Fiske saw him, stopped and 
shouted, `Another soul saved! Glory Hallelujah!' And 
there was poor, frightened Ikey, only half awake and 
yawning, never thinking about his soul at all. Poor 
child, he never had time to think of anything but his 
tired, overworked little body. 
Leslie went one night and the Fiske-man got right 
after her--ohhe was especially anxious about the 
souls of the nice-looking girlsbelieve me!--and he 
hurt her feelings so she never went again. And then he 
prayed every night after thatright in publicthat 
the Lord would soften her hard heart. Finally I went 
to Mr. Leavittour minister thenand told him if he 
didn't make Fiske stop that I'd just rise up the next 
night and throw my hymn book at him when he mentioned 
that `beautiful but unrepentant young woman.' I'd have 
done it toobelieve ME. Mr. Leavitt did put a stop to 
itbut Fiske kept on with his meetings until Charley 
Douglas put an end to his career in the Glen. Mrs. 
Charley had been out in California all winter. She'd 
been real melancholy in the fall--religious 
melancholy--it ran in her family. Her father worried 
so much over believing that he had committed the 
unpardonable sin that he died in the asylum. So when 
Rose Douglas got that way Charley packed her off to 
visit her sister in Los Angeles. She got perfectly 
well and came home just when the Fiske revival was in 
full swing. She stepped off the train at the Glen
real smiling and chipperand the first thing she saw 
staring her in the face on the blackgable-end of the 
freight shedwas the questionin big white letters
two feet high`Whither goest thou--to heaven or hell?' 
That had been one of Fiske's ideasand he had got 
Henry Hammond to paint it. Rose just gave a shriek and 
fainted; and when they got her home she was worse than 
ever. Charley Douglas went to Mr. Leavitt and told him 
that every Douglas would leave the church if Fiske was 
kept there any longer. Mr. Leavitt had to give infor 
the Douglases paid half his salaryso Fiske departed
and we had to depend on our Bibles once more for 
instructions on how to get to heaven. After he was 
gone Mr. Leavitt found out he was just a masquerading 
Methodistand he felt pretty sickbelieve ME. Mr. 
Leavitt fell short in some waysbut he was a good
sound Presbyterian." 
By the way, I had a letter from Mr. Ford yesterday,
said Anne. "He asked me to remember him kindly to 
you." 
I don't want his remembrances,said Miss Cornelia
curtly. 
Why?said Annein astonishment. "I thought you 
liked him." 
Well, so I did, in a kind of way. But I'll never 
forgive him for what he done to Leslie. There's that 
poor child eating her heart out about him--as if she 
hadn't had trouble enough--and him ranting round 
Toronto, I've no doubt, enjoying himself same as ever. 
Just like a man.
Oh, Miss Cornelia, how did you find out?
Lord, Anne, dearie, I've got eyes, haven't I? And 
I've known Leslie since she was a baby . There's been 
a new kind of heartbreak in her eyes all the fall, and 
I know that writer-man was behind it somehow. I'll 
never forgive myself for being the means of bringing 
him here. But I never expected he'd be like he was. I 
thought he'd just be like the other men Leslie had 
boarded--conceited young asses, every one of them, that 
she never had any use for. One of them did try to 
flirt with her once and she froze him out--so bad, I 
feel sure he's never got himself thawed since. So I 
never thought of any danger.
Don't let Leslie suspect you know her secret,said 
Anne hurriedly. "I think it would hurt her." 
Trust me, Anne, dearie. _I_ wasn't born yesterday. 
Oh, a plague on all the men! One of them ruined 
Leslie's life to begin with, and now another of the 
tribe comes and makes her still more wretched. Anne, 
this world is an awful place, believe me.
There's something in the world amiss Will be 
unriddled by and by,
quoted Anne dreamily. 
If it is, it'll be in a world where there aren't any 
men,said Miss Cornelia gloomily. 
What have the men been doing now?asked Gilbert
entering. 
Mischief--mischief! What else did they ever do?
It was Eve ate the apple, Miss Cornelia.
 'Twas a he-creature tempted her,retorted Miss 
Cornelia triumphantly. 
Leslieafter her first anguish was overfound it 
possible to go on with life after allas most of us 
dono matter what our particular form of torment has 
been. It is even possible that she enjoyed moments of 
itwhen she was one of the gay circle in the little 
house of dreams. But if Anne ever hoped that she was 
forgetting Owen Ford she would have been undeceived by 
the furtive hunger in Leslie's eyes whenever his name 
was mentioned. Pitiful to that hungerAnne always 
contrived to tell Captain Jim or Gilbert bits of news 
from Owen's letters when Leslie was with them. The 
girl's flush and pallor at such moments spoke all too 
eloquently of the emotion that filled her being. But 
she never spoke of him to Anneor mentioned that night 
on the sand-bar. 
One day her old dog died and she grieved bitterly over 
him. 
He's been my friend so long,she said sorrowfully to 
Anne. "He was Dick's old dogyou know--Dick had him 
for a year or so before we were married. He left him 
with me when he sailed on the Four Sisters. Carlo got 
very fond of me--and his dog-love helped me through 
that first dreadful year after mother diedwhen I was 
alone. When I heard that Dick was coming back I was 
afraid Carlo wouldn't be so much mine. But he never 
seemed to care for Dickthough he had been so fond of 
him once. He would snap and growl at him as if he were 
a stranger. I was glad. It was nice to have one thing 
whose love was all mine. That old dog has been such a 
comfort to meAnne. He got so feeble in the fall that 
I was afraid he couldn't live long--but I hoped I could 
nurse him through the winter. He seemed pretty well 
this morning. He was lying on the rug before the fire; 
thenall at oncehe got up and crept over to me; he 
put his head on my lap and gave me one loving look out 
of his bigsoftdog eyes--and then he just shivered 
and died. I shall miss him so." 
Let me give you another dog, Leslie,said Anne . 
I'm getting a lovely Gordon setter for a Christmas 
present for Gilbert. Let me give you one too.
Leslie shook her head. 
Not just now, thank you, Anne. I don't feel like 
having another dog yet. I don't seem to have any 
affection left for another. Perhaps--in time--I'll let 
you give me one. I really need one as a kind of 
protection. But there was something almost human about 
Carlo-- it wouldn't be DECENT to fill his place too 
hurriedly, dear old fellow .
Anne went to Avonlea a week before Christmas and stayed 
until after the holidays. Gilbert came up for herand 
there was a glad New Year celebration at Green Gables
when Barrys and Blythes and Wrights assembled to devour 
a dinner which had cost Mrs. Rachel and Marilla much 
careful thought and preparation. When they went back 
to Four Winds the little house was almost drifted over
for the third storm of a winter that was to prove 
phenomenally stormy had whirled up the harbor and 
heaped huge snow mountains about everything it 
encountered. But Captain Jim had shovelled out doors 
and pathsand Miss Cornelia had come down and kindled 
the hearth-fire. 
It's good to see you back, Anne, dearie! But did you 
ever see such drifts? You can't see the Moore place at 
all unless you go upstairs. Leslie'll be so glad 
you're back. She's almost buried alive over there. 
Fortunately Dick can shovel snow, and thinks it's great 
fun. Susan sent me word to tell you she would be on 
hand tomorrow. Where are you off to now, Captain?
I reckon I'll plough up to the Glen and sit a bit with 
old Martin Strong. He's not far from his end and he's 
lonesome. He hasn't many friends--been too busy all 
his life to make any. He's made heaps of money, 
though.
Well, he thought that since he couldn't serve God and 
Mammon he'd better stick to Mammon,said Miss 
Cornelia crisply. "So he shouldn't complain if he 
doesn't find Mammon very good company now." 
Captain Jim went outbut remembered something in the 
yard and turned back for a moment. 
I'd a letter from Mr. Ford, Mistress Blythe, and he 
says the life-book is accepted and is going to be 
published next fall. I felt fair uplifted when I got 
the news. To think that I'm to see it in print at 
last.
That man is clean crazy on the subject of his 
life-book,said Miss Cornelia compassionately. "For 
my partI think there's far too many books in the 
world now." 
CHAPTER 29 
GILBERT AND ANNE DISAGREE 
Gilbert laid down the ponderous medical tome over which 
he had been poring until the increasing dusk of the 
March evening made him desist. He leaned back in his 
chair and gazed meditatively out of the window. It was 
early spring--probably the ugliest time of the year. 
Not even the sunset could redeem the deadsodden 
landscape and rotten black harbor ice upon which he 
looked. No sign of life was visiblesave a big black 
crow winging his solitary way across a leaden field. 
Gilbert speculated idly concerning that crow. Was he a 
family crowwith a black but comely crow wife 
awaiting him in the woods beyond the Glen? Or was he a 
glossy young buck of a crow on courting thoughts 
intent? Or was he a cynical bachelor crowbelieving 
that he travels the fastest who travels alone? 
Whatever he washe soon disappeared in congenial gloom 
and Gilbert turned to the cheerier view indoors. 
The firelight flickered from point to pointgleaming 
on the white and green coats of Gog and Magogon the 
sleekbrown head of the beautiful setter basking on 
the rugon the picture frames on the wallson the 
vaseful of daffodils from the window gardenon Anne 
herselfsitting by her little tablewith her sewing 
beside her and her hands clasped over her knee while 
she traced out pictures in the fire--Castles in Spain 
whose airy turrets pierced moonlit cloud and sunset 
bar-ships sailing from the Haven of Good Hopes straight 
to Four Winds Harbor with precious burthen. For Anne 
was again a dreamer of dreamsalbeit a grim shape of 
fear went with her night and day to shadow and darken 
her visions. 
Gilbert was accustomed to refer to himself as "an old 
married man." But he still looked upon Anne with the 
incredulous eyes of a lover. He couldn't wholly 
believe yet that she was really his. It MIGHT be only 
a dream after allpart and parcel of this magic house 
of dreams. His soul still went on tip-toe before her
lest the charm be shattered and the dream dispelled. 
Anne,he said slowlylend me your ears. I want to 
talk with you about something.
Anne looked across at him through the fire-lit gloom. 
What is it?she asked gaily. "You look fearfully 
solemnGilbert. I really haven't done anything 
naughty today. Ask Susan." 
It's not of you--or ourselves--I want to talk. It's 
about Dick Moore.
Dick Moore?echoed Annesitting up alertly. "Why
what in the world have you to say about Dick Moore?" 
I've been thinking a great deal about him lately. Do 
you remember that time last summer I treated him for 
those carbuncles on his neck?
Yes--yes.
 I took the opportunity to examine the scars on his 
head thoroughly. I've always thought Dick was a very 
interesting case from a medical point of view. Lately 
I've been studying the history of trephining and the 
cases where it has been employed. Anne, I have come to 
the conclusion that if Dick Moore were taken to a good 
hospital and the operation of trephining performed on 
several places in his skull, his memory and faculties 
might be restored.
Gilbert!Anne's voice was full of protest. "Surely 
you don't mean it!" 
I do, indeed. And I have decided that it is my duty 
to broach the subject to Leslie.
Gilbert Blythe, you shall NOT do any such thing,
cried Anne vehemently. "OhGilbertyou won't--you 
won't. You couldn't be so cruel. Promise me you 
won't." 
Why, Anne-girl, I didn't suppose you would take it 
like this. Be reasonable--
I won't be reasonable--I can't be reasonable--I AM 
reasonable. It is you who are unreasonable. Gilbert, 
have you ever once thought what it would mean for 
Leslie if Dick Moore were to be restored to his right 
senses? Just stop and think! She's unhappy enough 
now; but life as Dick's nurse and attendant is a 
thousand times easier for her than life as Dick's wife. 
I know--I KNOW! It's unthinkable. Don't you meddle 
with the matter. Leave well enough alone.
I HAVE thought over that aspect of the case 
thoroughly, Anne. But I believe that a doctor is 
bound to set the sanctity of a patient's mind and body 
above all other considerations, no matter what the 
consequences may be. I believe it his duty to endeavor 
to restore health and sanity, if there is any hope 
whatever of it.
But Dick isn't your patient in that respect,cried 
Annetaking another tack. "If Leslie had asked you if 
anything could be done for himTHEN it might be your 
duty to tell her what you really thought. But you've 
no right to meddle ." 
I don't call it meddling. Uncle Dave told Leslie 
twelve years ago that nothing could be done for Dick. 
She believes that, of course.
And why did Uncle Dave tell her that, if it wasn't 
true?cried Annetriumphantly. "Doesn't he know as 
much about it as you?" 
I think not--though it may sound conceited and 
presumptuous to say it. And you know as well as I 
that he is rather prejudiced against what he calls 
`these new-fangled notions of cutting and carving.' 
He's even opposed to operating for appendicitis.
He's right,exclaimed Annewith a complete change 
of front. `I believe myself that you modern doctors 
are entirely too fond of making experiments with human 
flesh and blood." 
Rhoda Allonby would not be a living woman today if I 
had been afraid of making a certain experiment,
argued Gilbert. "I took the risk--and saved her 
life." 
I'm sick and tired of hearing about Rhoda Allonby,
cried Anne--most unjustlyfor Gilbert had never 
mentioned Mrs. Allonby's name since the day he had told 
Anne of his success in regard to her. And he could not 
be blamed for other people's discussion of it. 
Gilbert felt rather hurt. 
I had not expected you to look at the matter as you 
do, Anne,he said a little stifflygetting up and 
moving towards the office door. It was their first 
approach to a quarrel. 
But Anne flew after him and dragged him back. 
Now, Gilbert, you are not `going off mad.' Sit down 
here and I'll apologise bee-YEW-ti-fully, I shouldn't 
have said that. But--oh, if you knew--
Anne checked herself just in time. She had been on the 
very verge of betraying Leslie's secret. 
Knew what a woman feels about it,she concluded 
lamely. 
I think I do know. I've looked at the matter from 
every point of view--and I've been driven to the 
conclusion that it is my duty to tell Leslie that I 
believe it is possible that Dick can be restored to 
himself; there my responsibility ends. It will be for 
her to decide what she will do.
I don't think you've any right to put such a 
responsibility on her. She has enough to bear. She is 
poor--how could she afford such an operation?
That is for her to decide,persisted Gilbert 
stubbornly. 
You say you think that Dick can be cured. But are you 
SURE of it?
Certainly not. Nobody could be sure of such a thing. 
There may have been lesions of the brain itself, the 
effect of which can never be removed. But if, as I 
believe, his loss of memory and other faculties is due 
merely to the pressure on the brain centers of certain 
depressed areas of bone, then he can be cured.
But it's only a possibility!insisted Anne. "Now
suppose you tell Leslie and she decides to have the 
operation. It will cost a great deal. She will have 
to borrow the moneyor sell her little property. And 
suppose the operation is a failure and Dick remains the 
same. 
How will she be able to pay back the money she borrows
or make a living for herself and that big helpless 
creature if she sells the farm?" 
Oh, I know--I know. But it is my duty to tell her. I 
can't get away from that conviction.
Oh, I know the Blythe stubbornness,groaned Anne. 
But don't do this solely on your own responsibility. 
Consult Doctor Dave.
I HAVE done so,said Gilbert reluctantly. 
And what did he say?
In brief--as you say--leave well enough alone. Apart 
from his prejudice against new-fangled surgery, I'm 
afraid he looks at the case from your point of 
view--don't do it, for Leslie's sake.
There now,cried Anne triumphantly. "I do think
Gilbertthat you ought to abide by the judgment of a 
man nearly eightywho has seen a great deal and saved 
scores of lives himself--surely his opinion ought to 
weigh more than a mere boy's." 
Thank you.
Don't laugh. It's too serious.
That's just my point. It IS serious. Here is a man 
who is a helpless burden. He may be restored to reason 
and usefulness--
He was so very useful before,interjected Anne 
witheringly. 
He may be given a chance to make good and redeem the 
past. His wife doesn't know this. I do. It is 
therefore my duty to tell her that there is such a 
possibility. That, boiled down, is my decision.
Don't say `decision' yet, Gilbert. Consult somebody 
else. Ask Captain Jim what he thinks about it.
Very well. But I'll not promise to abide by his 
opinion, Anne. 
This is something a man must decide for himself. My 
conscience would never be easy if I kept silent on the 
subject.
Oh, your conscience!moaned Anne. "I suppose that 
Uncle Dave has a conscience toohasn't he?" 
Yes. But I am not the keeper of his conscience. 
Come, Anne, if this affair did not concern Leslie--if 
it were a purely abstract case, you would agree with 
me,--you know you would.
I wouldn't,vowed Annetrying to believe it 
herself. "Ohyou can argue all nightGilbertbut 
you won't convince me. Just you ask Miss Cornelia what 
she thinks of it." 
You're driven to the last ditch, Anne, when you bring 
up Miss Cornelia as a reinforcement. She will say, 
`Just like a man,' and rage furiously. No matter. 
This is no affair for Miss Cornelia to settle. Leslie 
alone must decide it.
You know very well how she will decide it,said 
Annealmost in tears. "She has ideals of dutytoo. 
I don't see how you can take such a responsibility on 
your shoulders. _I_ couldn't."
`Because right is right to follow right Were 
wisdom in the scorn of consequence,'
quoted Gilbert. 
Oh, you think a couplet of poetry a convincing 
argument!scoffed Anne. "That is so like a man." 
And then she laughed in spite of herself. It sounded 
so like an echo of Miss Cornelia. 
Well, if you won't accept Tennyson as an authority, 
perhaps you will believe the words of a Greater than 
he,said Gilbert seriously. "`Ye shall know the 
truth and the truth shall make you free.' I believe 
thatAnnewith all my heart. It's the greatest and 
grandest verse in the Bible--or in any literature--and 
the TRUESTif there are comparative degrees of 
trueness. And it's the first duty of a man to tell the 
truthas he sees it and believes it." 
In this case the truth won't make poor Leslie free,
sighed Anne. "It will probably end in still more 
bitter bondage for her. OhGilbertI CAN'T think you 
are right." 
CHAPTER 30 
LESLIE DECIDES 
A sudden outbreak of a virulent type of influenza at 
the Glen and down at the fishing village kept Gilbert 
so busy for the next fortnight that he had no time to 
pay the promised visit to Captain Jim. Anne hoped 
against hope that he had abandoned the idea about Dick 
Mooreandresolving to let sleeping dogs lieshe 
said no more about the subject. But she thought of it 
incessantly. 
I wonder if it would be right for me to tell him that 
Leslie cares for Owen,she thought. "He would never 
let her suspect that he knewso her pride would not 
sufferand it MIGHT convince him that he should let 
Dick Moore alone. Shall I--shall I? Noafter allI 
cannot. A promise is sacredand I've no right to 
betray Leslie's secret. But ohI never felt so 
worried over anything in my life as I do over this. 
It's spoiling the spring--it's spoiling everything." 
One evening Gilbert abruptly proposed that they go down 
and see Captain Jim. With a sinking heart Anne agreed
and they set forth. Two weeks of kind sunshine had 
wrought a miracle in the bleak landscape over which 
Gilbert's crow had flown. The hills and fields were 
dry and brown and warmready to break into bud and 
blossom; the harbor was laughter-shaken again; the long 
harbor road was like a gleaming red ribbon; down on the 
dunes a crowd of boyswho were out smelt fishingwere 
burning the thickdry sandhill grass of the preceding 
summer. The flames swept over the dunes rosily
flinging their cardinal banners against the dark gulf 
beyondand illuminating the channel and the fishing 
village. It was a picturesque scene which would at 
other times have delighted Anne's eyes; but she was not 
enjoying this walk. Neither was Gilbert. Their usual 
good-comradeship and Josephian community of taste and 
viewpoint were sadly lacking. Anne's disapproval of 
the whole project showed itself in the haughty uplift 
of her head and the studied politeness of her remarks. 
Gilbert's mouth was set in all the Blythe obstinacy
but his eyes were troubled. He meant to do what he 
believed to be his duty; but to be at outs with Anne 
was a high price to pay. Altogetherboth were glad 
when they reached the light--and remorseful that they 
should be glad. 
Captain Jim put away the fishing net upon which he was 
workingand welcomed them joyfully. In the searching 
light of the spring evening he looked older than Anne 
had ever seen him. His hair had grown much grayerand 
the strong old hand shook a little. But his blue eyes 
were clear and steadyand the staunch soul looked out 
through them gallant and unafraid. 
Captain Jim listened in amazed silence while Gilbert 
said what he had come to say. Annewho knew how the 
old man worshipped Lesliefelt quite sure that he 
would side with heralthough she had not much hope 
that this would influence Gilbert. She was therefore 
surprised beyond measure when Captain Jimslowly and 
sorrowfullybut unhesitatinglygave it as his opinion 
that Leslie should be told. 
Oh, Captain Jim, I didn't think you'd say that,she 
exclaimed reproachfully. "I thought you wouldn't want 
to make more trouble for her." 
Captain Jim shook his head. 
I don't want to. I know how you feel about it, 
Mistress Blythe-- just as I feel meself. But it ain't 
our feelings we have to steer by through life--no, no, 
we'd make shipwreck mighty often if we did that. 
There's only the one safe compass and we've got to set 
our course by that--what it's right to do. I agree 
with the doctor. If there's a chance for Dick, Leslie 
should be told of it. There's no two sides to that, in 
my opinion.
Well,said Annegiving up in despairwait until 
Miss Cornelia gets after you two men.
Cornelia'll rake us fore and aft, no doubt,assented 
Captain Jim. "You women are lovely crittersMistress 
Blythebut you're just a mite illogical. You're a 
highly eddicated lady and Cornelia isn'tbut you're 
like as two peas when it comes to that. I dunno's 
you're any the worse for it. Logic is a sort of hard
merciless thingI reckon. NowI'll brew a cup of tea 
and we'll drink it and talk of pleasant thingsjest to 
calm our minds a bit." 
At leastCaptain Jim's tea and conversation calmed 
Anne's mind to such an extent that she did not make 
Gilbert suffer so acutely on the way home as she had 
deliberately intended to do. She did not refer to the 
burning question at allbut she chatted amiably of 
other mattersand Gilbert understood that he was 
forgiven under protest. 
Captain Jim seems very frail and bent this spring. 
The winter has aged him,said Anne sadly. "I am 
afraid that he will soon be going to seek lost 
Margaret. I can't bear to think of it." 
Four Winds won't be the same place when Captain Jim 
`sets out to sea,'agreed Gilbert. 
The following evening he went to the house up the 
brook. Anne wandered dismally around until his 
return. 
Well, what did Leslie say?she demanded when he came 
in. 
Very little. I think she felt rather dazed.
And is she going to have the operation?
She is going to think it over and decide very soon.
Gilbert flung himself wearily into the easy chair 
before the fire. He looked tired. It had not been an 
easy thing for him to tell Leslie. And the terror that 
had sprung into her eyes when the meaning of what he 
told her came home to her was not a pleasant thing to 
remember. Nowwhen the die was casthe was beset 
with doubts of his own wisdom. 
Anne looked at him remorsefully; then she slipped down 
on the rug beside him and laid her glossy red head on 
his arm. 
Gilbert, I've been rather hateful over this. I won't 
be any more. Please just call me red-headed and 
forgive me.
By which Gilbert understood thatno matter what came 
of itthere would be no I-told-you-so's. But he was 
not wholly comforted. Duty in the abstract is one 
thing; duty in the concrete is quite another
especially when the doer is confronted by a woman's 
stricken eyes. 
Some instinct made Anne keep away from Leslie for the 
next three days. On the third evening Leslie came down 
to the little house and told Gilbert that she had made 
up her mind; she would take Dick to Montreal and have 
the operation. 
She was very pale and seemed to have wrapped herself in 
her old mantle of aloofness. But her eyes had lost the 
look which had haunted Gilbert; they were cold and 
bright; and she proceeded to discuss details with him 
in a crispbusiness-like way. There were plans to be 
made and many things to be thought over. When Leslie 
had got the information she wanted she went home. Anne 
wanted to walk part of the way with her. 
Better not,said Leslie curtly. "Today's rain has 
made the ground damp. Good-night." 
Have I lost my friend?said Anne with a sigh. "If 
the operation is successful and Dick Moore finds 
himself again Leslie will retreat into some remote 
fastness of her soul where none of us can ever find 
her." 
Perhaps she will leave him,said Gilbert. 
Leslie would never do that, Gilbert. Her sense of 
duty is very strong. She told me once that her 
Grandmother West always impressed upon her the fact 
that when she assumed any responsibility she must never 
shirk it, no matter what the consequences might be. 
That is one of her cardinal rules. I suppose it's very 
old-fashioned .
Don't be bitter, Anne-girl. You know you don't think 
it old- fashioned--you know you have the very same idea 
of sacredness of assumed responsibilities yourself. 
And you are right. Shirking responsibilities is the 
curse of our modern life--the secret of all the unrest 
and discontent that is seething in the world.
Thus saith the preacher,mocked Anne. But under the 
mockery she felt that he was right; and she was very 
sick at heart for Leslie. 
A week later Miss Cornelia descended like an avalanche 
upon the little house. Gilbert was away and Anne was 
compelled to bear the shock of the impact alone. 
Miss Cornelia hardly waited to get her hat off before 
she began. 
Anne, do you mean to tell me it's true what I've 
heard--that Dr. Blythe has told Leslie Dick can be 
cured, and that she is going to take him to Montreal to 
have him operated on?
Yes, it is quite true, Miss Cornelia,said Anne 
bravely. 
Well, it's inhuman cruelty, that's what it is,said 
Miss Corneliaviolently agitated. "I did think Dr. 
Blythe was a decent man. I didn't think he could have 
been guilty of this." 
Dr. Blythe thought it was his duty to tell Leslie that 
there was a chance for Dick,said Anne with spirit
and,she addedloyalty to Gilbert getting the 
better of herI agree with him.
Oh, no, you don't, dearie,said Miss Cornelia. "No 
person with any bowels of compassion could." 
Captain Jim does.
Don't quote that old ninny to me,cried Miss 
Cornelia. "And I don't care who agrees with him. 
Think--THINK what it means to that poor huntedharried 
girl." 
We DO think of it. But Gilbert believes that a doctor 
should put the welfare of a patient's mind and body 
before all other considerations.
That's just like a man. But I expected better things 
of you, Anne,said Miss Corneliamore in sorrow than 
in wrath; then she proceeded to bombard Anne with 
precisely the same arguments with which the latter had 
attacked Gilbert; and Anne valiantly defended her 
husband with the weapons he had used for his own 
protection. Long was the fraybut Miss Cornelia made 
an end at last. 
It's an iniquitous shame,she declaredalmost in 
tears. "That's just what it is--an iniquitous shame. 
Poorpoor Leslie!" 
Don't you think Dick should be considered a little 
too?pleaded Anne. 
Dick! Dick Moore! HE'S happy enough. He's a better 
behaved and more reputable member of society now than 
he ever was before. 
Why, he was a drunkard and perhaps worse. Are you 
going to set him loose again to roar and to devour?
He may reform,said poor Annebeset by foe without 
and traitor within. 
Reform your grandmother!retorted Miss Cornelia. 
Dick Moore got the injuries that left him as he is in 
a drunken brawl. He DESERVES his fate. It was sent on 
him for a punishment. I don't believe the doctor has 
any business to tamper with the visitations of God.
Nobody knows how Dick was hurt, Miss Cornelia. It may 
not have been in a drunken brawl at all. He may have 
been waylaid and robbed.
Pigs MAY whistle, but they've poor mouths for it,
said Miss Cornelia. "Wellthe gist of what you tell 
me is that the thing is settled and there's no use in 
talking. If that's so I'll hold my tongue. I don't 
propose to wear MY teeth out gnawing files. When a 
thing has to be I give in to it. But I like to make 
mighty sure first that it HAS to be. NowI'll devote 
MY energies to comforting and sustaining Leslie. And 
after all added Miss Cornelia, brightening up 
hopefully, perhaps nothing can be done for Dick." 
CHAPTER 31 
THE TRUTH MAKES FREE 
Lesliehaving once made up her mind what to do
proceeded to do it with characteristic resolution and 
speed. House-cleaning must be finished with first
whatever issues of life and death might await beyond. 
The gray house up the brook was put into flawless order 
and cleanlinesswith Miss Cornelia's ready assistance. 
Miss Corneliahaving said her say to Anneand later 
on to Gilbert and Captain Jim--sparing neither of them
let it be assured--never spoke of the matter to Leslie. 
She accepted the fact of Dick's operationreferred to 
it when necessary in a business-like wayand ignored 
it when it was not. Leslie never attempted to discuss 
it. She was very cold and quiet during these beautiful 
spring days. She seldom visited Anneand though she 
was invariably courteous and friendlythat very 
courtesy was as an icy barrier between her and the 
people of the little house. The old jokes and laughter 
and chumminess of common things could not reach her 
over it. Anne refused to feel hurt. She knew that 
Leslie was in the grip of a hideous dread--a dread 
that wrapped her away from all little glimpses of 
happiness and hours of pleasure. When one great 
passion seizes possession of the soul all other 
feelings are crowded aside. Never in all her life had 
Leslie Moore shuddered away from the future with more 
intolerable terror. But she went forward as 
unswervingly in the path she had elected as the martyrs 
of old walked their chosen wayknowing the end of it 
to be the fiery agony of the stake. 
The financial question was settled with greater ease 
than Anne had feared. Leslie borrowed the necessary 
money from Captain Jimandat her insistencehe took 
a mortgage on the little farm. 
So that is one thing off the poor girl's mind,Miss 
Cornelia told Anneand off mine too. Now, if Dick 
gets well enough to work again he'll be able to earn 
enough to pay the interest on it; and if he doesn't I 
know Captain Jim'll manage someway that Leslie won't 
have to. He said as much to me. `I'm getting old, 
Cornelia,' he said, `and I've no chick or child of my 
own. Leslie won't take a gift from a living man, but 
mebbe she will from a dead one.' So it will be all 
right as far as THAT goes. I wish everything else 
might be settled as satisfactorily. As for that wretch 
of a Dick, he's been awful these last few days. The 
devil was in him, believe ME! Leslie and I couldn't 
get on with our work for the tricks he'd play. He 
chased all her ducks one day around the yard till most 
of them died. And not one thing would he do for us. 
Sometimes, you know, he'll make himself quite handy, 
bringing in pails of water and wood. But this week if 
we sent him to the well he'd try to climb down into it. 
I thought once, `If you'd only shoot down there 
head-first everything would be nicely settled.'
Oh, Miss Cornelia!
Now, you needn't Miss Cornelia me, Anne, dearie. 
ANYBODY would have thought the same. If the Montreal 
doctors can make a rational creature out of Dick Moore 
they're wonders.
Leslie took Dick to Montreal early in May. Gilbert 
went with herto help herand make the necessary 
arrangements for her. He came home with the report 
that the Montreal surgeon whom they had consulted 
agreed with him that there was a good chance of Dick's 
restoration. 
Very comforting,was Miss Cornelia's sarcastic 
comment. 
Anne only sighed. Leslie had been very distant at 
their parting. 
But she had promised to write. Ten days after 
Gilbert's return the letter came. Leslie wrote that 
the operation had been successfully performed and that 
Dick was making a good recovery. 
What does she mean by `successfully?'asked Anne. 
Does she mean that Dick's memory is really restored?
Not likely--since she says nothing of it,said 
Gilbert. "She uses the word `successfully' from the 
surgeon's point of view. The operation has been 
performed and followed by normal results. But it is 
too soon to know whether Dick's faculties will be 
eventually restoredwholly or in part. His memory 
would not be likely to return to him all at once. The 
process will be gradualif it occurs at all. Is that 
all she says?" 
Yes--there's her letter. It's very short. Poor girl, 
she must be under a terrible strain. Gilbert Blythe, 
there are heaps of things I long to say to you, only it 
would be mean.
Miss Cornelia says them for you,said Gilbert with a 
rueful smile. "She combs me down every time I 
encounter her. She makes it plain to me that she 
regards me as little better than a murdererand that 
she thinks it a great pity that Dr. Dave ever let me 
step into his shoes. She even told me that the 
Methodist doctor over the harbor was to be preferred 
before me. With Miss Cornelia the force of 
condemnation can no further go." 
If Cornelia Bryant was sick, it would not be Doctor 
Dave or the Methodist doctor she would send for,
sniffed Susan. "She would have you out of your 
hard-earned bed in the middle of the nightdoctor
dearif she took a spell of miserythat she would. 
And then she would likely say your bill was past all 
reason. But do not mind herdoctordear. It takes 
all kinds of people to make a world." 
No further word came from Leslie for some time. The 
May days crept away in a sweet succession and the 
shores of Four Winds Harbor greened and bloomed and 
purpled. One day in late May Gilbert came home to be 
met by Susan in the stable yard. 
I am afraid something has upset Mrs. Doctor, doctor, 
dear,she said mysteriously. "She got a letter this 
afternoon and since then she has just been walking 
round the garden and talking to herself. You know it 
is not good for her to be on her feet so muchdoctor
dear. She did not see fit to tell me what her news 
wasand I am no prydoctordearand never wasbut 
it is plain something has upset her. And it is not 
good for her to be upset." 
Gilbert hurried rather anxiously to the garden. Had 
anything happened at Green Gables? But Annesitting 
on the rustic seat by the brookdid not look troubled
though she was certainly much excited. Her eyes were 
their grayestand scarlet spots burned on her cheeks. 
What has happened, Anne?
Anne gave a queer little laugh. 
I think you'll hardly believe it when I tell you, 
Gilbert. _I_ can't believe it yet. As Susan said the 
other day, `I feel like a fly coming to live in the 
sun--dazed-like.' It's all so incredible. I've read 
the letter a score of times and every time it's just 
the same--I can't believe my own eyes. Oh, Gilbert, 
you were right--so right. I can see that clearly 
enough now--and I'm so ashamed of myself--and will you 
ever really forgive me?
Anne, I'll shake you if you don't grow coherent. 
Redmond would be ashamed of you. WHAT has happened?
You won't believe it--you won't believe it--
I'm going to phone for Uncle Dave,said Gilbert
pretending to start for the house. 
Sit down, Gilbert. I'll try to tell you. I've had a 
letter, and oh, Gilbert, it's all so amazing--so 
incredibly amazing--we never thought--not one of us 
ever dreamed--
I suppose,said Gilbertsitting down with a 
resigned airthe only thing to do in a case of this 
kind is to have patience and go at the matter 
categorically. Whom is your letter from?
Leslie--and, oh, Gilbert--
Leslie! Whew! What has she to say? What's the news 
about Dick?
Anne lifted the letter and held it outcalmly dramatic 
in a moment. 
There is NO Dick! The man we have thought Dick 
Moore-- whom everybody in Four Winds has believed for 
twelve years to be Dick Moore--is his cousin, George 
Moore, of Nova Scotia, who, it seems, always resembled 
him very strikingly. Dick Moore died of yellow fever 
thirteen years ago in Cuba.
CHAPTER 32 
MISS CORNELIA DISCUSSES THE AFFAIR 
And do you mean to tell me, Anne, dearie, that Dick 
Moore has turned out not to be Dick Moore at all but 
somebody else? Is THAT what you phoned up to me 
today?
Yes, Miss Cornelia. It is very amazing, isn't it?
It's--it's--just like a man,said Miss Cornelia 
helplessly. She took off her hat with trembling 
fingers. For once in her life Miss Cornelia was 
undeniably staggered. 
I can't seem to sense it, Anne,she said. "I've 
heard you say it--and I believe you--but I can't take 
it in. Dick Moore is dead-- has been dead all these 
years--and Leslie is free?" 
Yes. The truth has made her free. Gilbert was right 
when he said that verse was the grandest in the 
Bible.
Tell me everything, Anne, dearie. Since I got your 
phone I've been in a regular muddle, believe ME. 
Cornelia Bryant was never so kerflummuxed before.
There isn't a very great deal to tell. Leslie's 
letter was short. She didn't go into particulars. 
This man--George Moore--has recovered his memory and 
knows who he is. He says Dick took yellow fever in 
Cuba, and the Four Sisters had to sail without him. 
George stayed behind to nurse him. But he died very 
shortly afterwards. 
George did not write Leslie because he intended to come 
right home and tell her himself.
And why didn't he?
I suppose his accident must have intervened. Gilbert 
says it is quite likely that George Moore remembers 
nothing of his accident, or what led to it, and may 
never remember it. It probably happened very soon 
after Dick's death. We may find out more particulars 
when Leslie writes again.
Does she say what she is going to do? When is she 
coming home?
She says she will stay with George Moore until he can 
leave the hospital. She has written to his people in 
Nova Scotia. It seems that George's only near relative 
is a married sister much older than himself. She was 
living when George sailed on the Four Sisters, but of 
course we do not know what may have happened since. 
Did you ever see George Moore, Miss Cornelia?
I did. It is all coming back to me. He was here 
visiting his Uncle Abner eighteen years ago, when he 
and Dick would be about seventeen. They were double 
cousins, you see. Their fathers were brothers and 
their mothers were twin sisters, and they did look a 
terrible lot alike. Of course,added Miss Cornelia 
scornfullyit wasn't one of those freak resemblances 
you read of in novels where two people are so much 
alike that they can fill each other's places and their 
nearest and dearest can't tell between them. In those 
days you could tell easy enough which was George and 
which was Dick, if you saw them together and near at 
hand. Apart, or some distance away, it wasn't so easy. 
They played lots of tricks on people and thought it 
great fun, the two scamps. George Moore was a little 
taller and a good deal fatter than Dick--though neither 
of them was what you would call fat--they were both of 
the lean kind. Dick had higher color than George, and 
his hair was a shade lighter. But their features were 
just alike, and they both had that queer freak of 
eyes--one blue and one hazel. They weren't much alike 
in any other way, though. George was a real nice 
fellow, though he was a scalawag for mischief, and some 
said he had a liking for a glass even then. But 
everybody liked him better than Dick. He spent about a 
month here. Leslie never saw him; she was only about 
eight or nine then and I remember now that she spent 
that whole winter over harbor with her grandmother 
West. Captain Jim was away, too--that was the winter 
he was wrecked on the Magdalens. I don't suppose 
either he or Leslie had ever heard about the Nova 
Scotia cousin looking so much like Dick. Nobody ever 
thought of him when Captain Jim brought Dick--George, I 
should say--home. Of course, we all thought Dick had 
changed considerable--he'd got so lumpish and fat. But 
we put that down to what had happened to him, and no 
doubt that was the reason, for, as I've said, George 
wasn't fat to begin with either. And there was no 
other way we could have guessed, for the man's senses 
were clean gone. I can't see that it is any wonder we 
were all deceived. But it's a staggering thing. And 
Leslie has sacrificed the best years of her life to 
nursing a man who hadn't any claim on her! Oh, drat 
the men! No matter what they do, it's the wrong thing. 
And no matter who they are, it's somebody they 
shouldn't be. They do exasperate me.
Gilbert and Captain Jim are men, and it is through 
them that the truth has been discovered at last,said 
Anne. 
Well, I admit that,conceded Miss Cornelia 
reluctantly. "I'm sorry I raked the doctor off so. 
It's the first time in my life I've ever felt ashamed 
of anything I said to a man. I don't know as I shall 
tell him sothough. He'll just have to take it for 
granted. WellAnnedearieit's a mercy the Lord 
doesn't answer all our prayers. I've been praying hard 
right along that the operation wouldn't cure Dick. Of 
course I didn't put it just quite so plain. But that 
was what was in the back of my mindand I have no 
doubt the Lord knew it." 
Well, He has answered the spirit of your prayer. You 
really wished that things shouldn't be made any harder 
for Leslie. I'm afraid that in my secret heart I've 
been hoping the operation wouldn't succeed, and I am 
wholesomely ashamed of it.
How does Leslie seem to take it?
She writes like one dazed. I think that, like 
ourselves, she hardly realises it yet. She says, `It 
all seems like a strange dream to me, Anne.' That is 
the only reference she makes to herself.
Poor child! I suppose when the chains are struck off 
a prisoner he'd feel queer and lost without them for a 
while. Anne, dearie, here's a thought keeps coming 
into my mind. What about Owen Ford? We both know 
Leslie was fond of him. Did it ever occur to you that 
he was fond of her?
It--did--once,admitted Annefeeling that she might 
say so much. 
Well, I hadn't any reason to think he was, but it just 
appeared to me he MUST be. Now, Anne, dearie, the Lord 
knows I'm not a match-maker, and I scorn all such 
doings. But if I were you and writing to that Ford man 
I'd just mention, casual-like, what has happened. That 
is what _I_'d do.
Of course I will mention it when I write him,said 
Annea trifle distantly. Somehowthis was a thing 
she could not discuss with Miss Cornelia. And yetshe 
had to admit that the same thought had been lurking in 
her mind ever since she had heard of Leslie's freedom. 
But she would not desecrate it by free speech. 
Of course there is no great rush, dearie. But Dick 
Moore's been dead for thirteen years and Leslie has 
wasted enough of her life for him. We'll just see what 
comes of it. As for this George Moore, who's gone and 
come back to life when everyone thought he was dead and 
done for, just like a man, I'm real sorry for him. He 
won't seem to fit in anywhere.
He is still a young man, and if he recovers 
completely, as seems likely, he will be able to make a 
place for himself again. It must be very strange for 
him, poor fellow. I suppose all these years since his 
accident will not exist for him.
CHAPTER 33 
LESLIE RETURNS 
A fortnight later Leslie Moore came home alone to the 
old house where she had spent so many bitter years. In 
the June twilight she went over the fields to Anne's
and appeared with ghost-like suddenness in the scented 
garden. 
Leslie!cried Anne in amazement. "Where have you 
sprung from? We never knew you were coming. Why 
didn't you write? We would have met you." 
I couldn't write somehow, Anne. It seemed so futile 
to try to say anything with pen and ink. And I wanted 
to get back quietly and unobserved.
Anne put her arms about Leslie and kissed her. Leslie 
returned the kiss warmly. She looked pale and tired
and she gave a little sigh as she dropped down on the 
grasses beside a great bed of daffodils that were 
gleaming through the palesilvery twilight like golden 
stars. 
And you have come home alone, Leslie?
Yes. George Moore's sister came to Montreal and took 
him home with her. Poor fellow, he was sorry to part 
with me--though I was a stranger to him when his memory 
first came back. He clung to me in those first hard 
days when he was trying to realise that Dick's death 
was not the thing of yesterday that it seemed to him. 
It was all very hard for him. I helped him all I 
could. When his sister came it was easier for him, 
because it seemed to him only the other day that he had 
seen her last. Fortunately she had not changed much, 
and that helped him, too.
It is all so strange and wonderful, Leslie. I think 
we none of us realise it yet.
I cannot. When I went into the house over there an 
hour ago, I felt that it MUST be a dream--that Dick 
must be there, with his childish smile, as he had been 
for so long. Anne, I seem stunned yet. I'm not glad or 
sorry--or ANYTHING. I feel as if something had been 
torn suddenly out of my life and left a terrible hole. 
I feel as if I couldn't be _I_--as if I must have 
changed into somebody else and couldn't get used to it. 
It gives me a horrible lonely, dazed, helpless feeling. 
It's good to see you again--it seems as if you were a 
sort of anchor for my drifting soul. Oh, Anne, I 
dread it all--the gossip and wonderment and 
questioning. When I think of that, I wish that I need 
not have come home at all. Dr. Dave was at the station 
when I came off the train--he brought me home. Poor 
old man, he feels very badly because he told me years 
ago that nothing could be done for Dick. `I honestly 
thought so, Leslie,' he said to me today. `But I 
should have told you not to depend on my opinion--I 
should have told you to go to a specialist. If I had, 
you would have been saved many bitter years, and poor 
George Moore many wasted ones. I blame myself very 
much, Leslie.' I told him not to do that--he had done 
what he thought right. He has always been so kind to 
me--I couldn't bear to see him worrying over it.
And Dick--George, I mean? Is his memory fully 
restored?
Practically. Of course, there are a great many 
details he can't recall yet--but he remembers more and 
more every day. He went out for a walk on the evening 
after Dick was buried. He had Dick's money and watch 
on him; he meant to bring them home to me, along with 
my letter. He admits he went to a place where the 
sailors resorted--and he remembers drinking--and 
nothing else. Anne, I shall never forget the moment he 
remembered his own name. I saw him looking at me with 
an intelligent but puzzled expression. I said, `Do you 
know me, Dick?' He answered, `I never saw you before. 
Who are you? And my name is not Dick. I am George 
Moore, and Dick died of yellow fever yesterday! Where 
am I? What has happened to me?' I--I fainted, Anne. 
And ever since I have felt as if I were in a dream.
You will soon adjust yourself to this new state of 
things, Leslie. And you are young--life is before 
you--you will have many beautiful years yet.
Perhaps I shall be able to look at it in that way 
after a while, Anne. Just now I feel too tired and 
indifferent to think about the future. I'm--I'm--Anne, 
I'm lonely. I miss Dick. Isn't it all very strange? 
Do you know, I was really fond of poor Dick--George, I 
suppose I should say--just as I would have been fond of 
a helpless child who depended on me for everything. 
would never have admitted it--I was really ashamed of 
it--because, you see, I had hated and despised Dick so 
much before he went away. When I heard that Captain 
Jim was bringing him home I expected I would just feel 
the same to him. But I never did--although I continued 
to loathe him as I remembered him before. From the 
time he came home I felt only pity--a pity that hurt 
and wrung me. I supposed then that it was just because 
his accident had made him so helpless and changed. But 
now I believe it was because there was really a 
different personality there. Carlo knew it, Anne--I 
know now that Carlo knew it. I always thought it 
strange that Carlo shouldn't have known Dick. Dogs are 
usually so faithful. But HE knew it was not his master 
who had come back, although none of the rest of us 
did. I had never seen George Moore, you know. I 
remember now that Dick once mentioned casually that he 
had a cousin in Nova Scotia who looked as much like him 
as a twin; but the thing had gone out of my memory, and 
in any case I would never have thought it of any 
importance. You see, it never occurred to me to 
question Dick's identity. Any change in him seemed to 
me just the result of the accident. 
OhAnnethat night in April when Gilbert told me he 
thought Dick might be cured! I can never forget it. 
It seemed to me that I had once been a prisoner in a 
hideous cage of tortureand then the door had been 
opened and I could get out. I was still chained to the 
cage but I was not in it. And that night I felt that a 
merciless hand was drawing me back into the cage--back 
to a torture even more terrible than it had once been. 
I didn't blame Gilbert. I felt he was right. And he 
had been very good--he said that ifin view of the 
expense and uncertainty of the operationI should 
decide not to risk ithe would not blame me in the 
least. But I knew how I ought to decide--and I 
couldn't face it. All night I walked the floor like a 
mad womantrying to compel myself to face it. I 
couldn'tAnne--I thought I couldn't--and when morning 
broke I set my teeth and resolved that I WOULDN'T. I 
would let things remain as they were. It was very 
wickedI know. It would have been just punishment for 
such wickedness if I had just been left to abide by 
that decision. I kept to it all day. That afternoon I 
had to go up to the Glen to do some shopping. It was 
one of Dick's quietdrowsy daysso I left him alone. 
I was gone a little longer than I had expectedand he 
missed me. He felt lonely. And when I got homehe 
ran to meet me just like a childwith such a pleased 
smile on his face. SomehowAnneI just gave way 
then. That smile on his poor vacant face was more than 
I could endure. I felt as if I were denying a child 
the chance to grow and develop. I knew that I must 
give him his chanceno matter what the consequences 
might be. So I came over and told Gilbert. OhAnne
you must have thought me hateful in those weeks before 
I went away. I didn't mean to be--but I couldn't think 
of anything except what I had to doand everything and 
everybody about me were like shadows." 
I know--I understood, Leslie. And now it is all 
over--your chain is broken--there is no cage.
There is no cage,repeated Leslie absentlyplucking 
at the fringing grasses with her slenderbrown hands. 
But--it doesn't seem as if there were anything else, 
Anne. You--you remember what I told you of my folly 
that night on the sand-bar? I find one doesn't get 
over being a fool very quickly. Sometimes I think 
there are people who are fools forever. And to be a 
fool--of that kind--is almost as bad as being a--a dog 
on a chain.
You will feel very differently after you get over 
being tired and bewildered,said Annewhoknowing a 
certain thing that Leslie did not knowdid not feel 
herself called upon to waste overmuch sympathy. 
Leslie laid her splendid golden head against Anne's 
knee. 
Anyhow, I have YOU,she said. "Life can't be 
altogether empty with such a friend. Annepat my 
head--just as if I were a little girl--MOTHER me a 
bit--and let me tell you while my stubborn tongue is 
loosed a little just what you and your comradeship have 
meant to me since that night I met you on the rock 
shore." 
CHAPTER 34 
THE SHIP O'DREAMS COMES TO HARBOR 
One morningwhen a windy golden sunrise was billowing 
over the gulf in waves of lighta certain weary stork 
flew over the bar of Four Winds Harbor on his way from 
the Land of Evening Stars. Under his wing was tucked a 
sleepystarry-eyedlittle creature. The stork was 
tiredand he looked wistfully about him. He knew he 
was somewhere near his destinationbut he could not 
yet see it. The bigwhite light-house on the red 
sandstone cliff had its good points; but no stork 
possessed of any gumption would leave a newvelvet 
baby there. An old gray housesurrounded by willows
in a blossomy brook valleylooked more promisingbut 
did not seem quite the thing either. The staring 
green abode further on was manifestly out of the 
question. Then the stork brightened up. He had 
caught sight of the very place--a little white house 
nestled against a bigwhispering firwoodwith a 
spiral of blue smoke winding up from its kitchen 
chimney--a house which just looked as if it were meant 
for babies. The stork gave a sigh of satisfactionand 
softly alighted on the ridge-pole. 
Half an hour later Gilbert ran down the hall and tapped 
on the spare-room door. A drowsy voice answered him 
and in a moment Marilla's palescared face peeped out 
from behind the door. 
Marilla, Anne has sent me to tell you that a certain 
young gentleman has arrived here. He hasn't brought 
much luggage with him, but he evidently means to 
stay.
For pity's sake!said Marilla blankly. "You don't 
mean to tell meGilbertthat it's all over. Why 
wasn't I called?" 
Anne wouldn't let us disturb you when there was no 
need. Nobody was called until about two hours ago. 
There was no `passage perilous' this time.
And--and--Gilbert--will this baby live?
He certainly will. He weighs ten pounds and--why, 
listen to him. Nothing wrong with his lungs, is there? 
The nurse says his hair will be red. Anne is furious 
with her, and I'm tickled to death.
That was a wonderful day in the little house of dreams. 
The best dream of all has come true,said Annepale 
and rapturous. "OhMarillaI hardly dare believe it
after that horrible day last summer. I have had a 
heartache ever since then--but it is gone now." 
This baby will take Joy's place,said Marilla. 
Oh, no, no, NO, Marilla. He can't--nothing can ever 
do that. He has his own place, my dear, wee 
man-child. But little Joy has hers, and always will 
have it. If she had lived she would have been over a 
year old. She would have been toddling around on her 
tiny feet and lisping a few words. I can see her so 
plainly, Marilla. Oh, I know now that Captain Jim was 
right when he said God would manage better than that my 
baby would seem a stranger to me when I found her 
Beyond. I've learned THAT this past year. I've 
followed her development day by day and week by week--I 
always shall. I shall know just how she grows from 
year to year--and when I meet her again I'll know 
her--she won't be a stranger. Oh, Marilla, LOOK at his 
dear, darling toes! Isn't it strange they should be so 
perfect?
It would be stranger if they weren't,said Marilla 
crisply. Now that all was safely overMarilla was 
herself again. 
Oh, I know--but it seems as if they couldn't be quite 
FINISHED, you know--and they are, even to the tiny 
nails. And his hands--JUST look at his hands, 
Marilla.
They appear to be a good deal like hands,Marilla 
conceded. 
See how he clings to my finger. I'm sure he knows me 
already. He cries when the nurse takes him away. Oh, 
Marilla, do you think--you don't think, do you--that 
his hair is going to be red?
I don't see much hair of any color,said Marilla. 
I wouldn't worry about it, if I were you, until it 
becomes visible.
Marilla, he HAS hair--look at that fine little down 
all over his head. Anyway, nurse says his eyes will be 
hazel and his forehead is exactly like Gilbert's.
And he has the nicest little ears, Mrs. Doctor, 
dear,said Susan. "The first thing I did was to look 
at his ears. Hair is deceitful and noses and eyes 
changeand you cannot tell what is going to come of 
thembut ears is ears from start to finishand you 
always know where you are with them. Just look at 
their shape--and they are set right back against his 
precious head. You will never need to be ashamed of 
his earsMrs. Doctordear." 
Anne's convalescence was rapid and happy. Folks came 
and worshipped the babyas people have bowed before 
the kingship of the new-born since long before the Wise 
Men of the East knelt in homage to the Royal Babe of 
the Bethlehem manger. Leslieslowly finding herself 
amid the new conditions of her lifehovered over it
like a beautifulgolden-crowned Madonna. Miss 
Cornelia nursed it as knackily as could any mother in 
Israel. Captain Jim held the small creature in his big 
brown hands and gazed tenderly at itwith eyes that 
saw the children who had never been born to him. 
What are you going to call him?asked Miss Cornelia. 
Anne has settled his name,answered Gilbert. 
James Matthew--after the two finest gentlemen I've 
ever known--not even saving your presence,said Anne 
with a saucy glance at Gilbert. 
Gilbert smiled. 
I never knew Matthew very well; he was so shy we boys 
couldn't get acquainted with him--but I quite agree 
with you that Captain Jim is one of the rarest and 
finest souls God ever clothed in clay. He is so 
delighted over the fact that we have given his name to 
our small lad. It seems he has no other namesake.
Well, James Matthew is a name that will wear well and 
not fade in the washing,said Miss Cornelia. "I'm 
glad you didn't load him down with some highfalutin
romantic name that he'd be ashamed of when he gets to 
be a grandfather. Mrs. William Drew at the Glen has 
called her baby Bertie Shakespeare. Quite a 
combinationisn't it? And I'm glad you haven't had 
much trouble picking on a name. Some folks have an 
awful time. When the Stanley Flaggs' first boy was 
born there was so much rivalry as to who the child 
should be named for that the poor little soul had to 
go for two years without a name. Then a brother came 
along and there it was--`Big Baby' and `Little Baby.' 
Finally they called Big Baby Peter and Little Baby 
Isaacafter the two grandfathersand had them both 
christened together. And each tried to see if it 
couldn't howl the other down. You know that Highland 
Scotch family of MacNabs back of the Glen? They've got 
twelve boys and the oldest and the youngest are both 
called Neil--Big Neil and Little Neil in the same 
family. WellI s'pose they ran out of names." 
I have read somewhere,laughed Annethat the first 
child is a poem but the tenth is very prosy prose. 
Perhaps Mrs. MacNab thought that the twelfth was merely 
an old tale re-told.
Well, there's something to be said for large 
families,said Miss Corneliawith a sigh. "I was an 
only child for eight years and I did long for a 
brother and sister. Mother told me to pray for 
one--and pray I didbelieve ME. Wellone day Aunt 
Nellie came to me and said`Corneliathere is a 
little brother for you upstairs in your ma's room. You 
can go up and see him.' I was so excited and delighted 
I just flew upstairs. And old Mrs. Flagg lifted up the 
baby for me to see. LordAnnedearieI never was so 
disappointed in my life. You seeI'd been praying for 
A BROTHER TWO YEARS OLDER THAN MYSELF." 
How long did it take you to get over your 
disappointment?asked Anneamid her laughter. 
Well, I had a spite at Providence for a good spell, 
and for weeks I wouldn't even look at the baby. Nobody 
knew why, for I never told. Then he began to get real 
cute, and held out his wee hands to me and I began to 
get fond of him. But I didn't get really reconciled to 
him until one day a school chum came to see him and 
said she thought he was awful small for his age. I 
just got boiling mad, and I sailed right into her, and 
told her she didn't know a nice baby when she saw one, 
and ours was the nicest baby in the world. And after 
that I just worshipped him. Mother died before he was 
three years old and I was sister and mother to him 
both. Poor little lad, he was never strong, and he 
died when he wasn't much over twenty. Seems to me I'd 
have given anything on earth, Anne, dearie, if he'd 
only lived.
Miss Cornelia sighed. Gilbert had gone down and 
Lesliewho had been crooning over the small James 
Matthew in the dormer windowlaid him asleep in his 
basket and went her way. As soon as she was safely out 
of earshotMiss Cornelia bent forward and said in a 
conspirator's whisper: 
Anne, dearie, I'd a letter from Owen Ford yesterday. 
He's in Vancouver just now, but he wants to know if I 
can board him for a month later on. YOU know what that 
means. Well, I hope we're doing right.
We've nothing to do with it--we couldn't prevent him 
from coming to Four Winds if he wanted to,said Anne 
quickly. She did not like the feeling of match-making 
Miss Cornelia's whispers gave her; and then she weakly 
succumbed herself. 
Don't let Leslie know he is coming until he is here,
she said. "If she found out I feel sure she would go 
away at once. She intends to go in the fall 
anyhow--she told me so the other day. She is going to 
Montreal to take up nursing and make what she can of 
her life." 
Oh, well, Anne, dearie,said Miss Cornelianodding 
sagely "that is all as it may be. You and I have done 
our part and we must leave the rest to Higher Hands." 
CHAPTER 35 
POLITICS AT FOUR WINDS 
When anne came downstairs againthe Islandas well as 
all Canadawas in the throes of a campaign preceding a 
general election. Gilbertwho was an ardent 
Conservativefound himself caught in the vortexbeing 
much in demand for speech-making at the various county 
rallies. Miss Cornelia did not approve of his mixing 
up in politics and told Anne so. 
Dr. Dave never did it. Dr. Blythe will find he is 
making a mistake, believe ME. Politics is something no 
decent man should meddle with.
Is the government of the country to be left solely to 
the rogues then?asked Anne. 
Yes--so long as it's Conservative rogues,said Miss 
Corneliamarching off with the honors of war. "Men 
and politicians are all tarred with the same brush. 
The Grits have it laid on thicker than the 
Conservativesthat's all--CONSIDERABLY thicker. But 
Grit or Torymy advice to Dr. Blythe is to steer clear 
of politics. First thing you knowhe'll be running an 
election himselfand going off to Ottawa for half the 
year and leaving his practice to go to the dogs." 
Ah, well, let's not borrow trouble,said Anne. "The 
rate of interest is too high. Insteadlet's look at 
Little Jem. It should be spelled with a G. Isn't he 
perfectly beautiful? Just see the dimples in his 
elbows. We'll bring him up to be a good Conservative
you and IMiss Cornelia." 
Bring him up to be a good man,said Miss Cornelia. 
They're scarce and valuable; though, mind you, I 
wouldn't like to see him a Grit. As for the election, 
you and I may be thankful we don't live over harbor. 
The air there is blue these days. Every Elliott and 
Crawford and MacAllister is on the warpath, loaded for 
bear. This side is peaceful and calm, seeing there's 
so few men. Captain Jim's a Grit, but it's my opinion 
he's ashamed of it, for he never talks politics. There 
isn't any earthly doubt that the Conservatives will be 
returned with a big majority again.
Miss Cornelia was mistaken. On the morning after the 
election Captain Jim dropped in at the little house to 
tell the news. So virulent is the microbe of party 
politicseven in a peaceable old manthat Captain 
Jim's cheeks were flushed and his eyes were flashing 
with all his old-time fire. 
Mistress Blythe, the Liberals are in with a sweeping 
majority. After eighteen years of Tory mismanagement 
this down-trodden country is going to have a chance at 
last.
I never heard you make such a bitter partisan speech 
before, Captain Jim. I didn't think you had so much 
political venom in you,laughed Annewho was not 
much excited over the tidings. Little Jem had said 
Wow-gathat morning. What were principalities and 
powersthe rise and fall of dynastiesthe overthrow 
of Grit or Torycompared with that miraculous 
occurrence? 
It's been accumulating for a long while,said 
Captain Jimwith a deprecating smile. "I thought I 
was only a moderate Gritbut when the news came that 
we were in I found out how Gritty I really was." 
You know the doctor and I are Conservatives.
Ah, well, it's the only bad thing I know of either of 
you, Mistress Blythe. Cornelia is a Tory, too. I 
called in on my way from the Glen to tell her the 
news.
Didn't you know you took your life in your hands?
Yes, but I couldn't resist the temptation.
How did she take it?
Comparatively calm, Mistress Blythe, comparatively 
calm. She says, says she, `Well, Providence sends 
seasons of humiliation to a country, same as to 
individuals. You Grits have been cold and hungry for 
many a year. Make haste to get warmed and fed, for you 
won't be in long.' `Well, now Cornelia,' I says, 
`mebbe Providence thinks Canada needs a real long spell 
of humiliation.' Ah, Susan, have YOU heard the news? 
The Liberals are in.
Susan had just come in from the kitchenattended by 
the odor of delectable dishes which always seemed to 
hover around her. 
Now, are they?she saidwith beautiful unconcern. 
Well, I never could see but that my bread rose just as 
light when Grits were in as when they were not. And if 
any party, Mrs. Doctor, dear, will make it rain before 
the week is out, and save our kitchen garden from 
entire ruination, that is the party Susan will vote 
for. In the meantime, will you just step out and give 
me your opinion on the meat for dinner? I am fearing 
that it is very tough, and I think that we had better 
change our butcher as well as our government.
One eveninga week laterAnne walked down to the 
Pointto see if she could get some fresh fish from 
Captain Jimleaving Little Jem for the first time. It 
was quite a tragedy. Suppose he cried? Suppose Susan 
did not know just exactly what to do for him? Susan 
was calm and serene. 
I have had as much experience with him as you, Mrs. 
Doctor, dear, have I not?
Yes, with him--but not with other babies. Why, I 
looked after three pairs of twins, when I was a child, 
Susan. When they cried, I gave them peppermint or 
castor oil quite coolly. It's quite curious now to 
recall how lightly I took all those babies and their 
woes.
Oh, well, if Little Jem cries, I will just clap a hot 
water bag on his little stomach,said Susan. 
Not too hot, you know,said Anne anxiously. Ohwas 
it really wise to go? 
Do not you fret, Mrs. Doctor, dear. Susan is not the 
woman to burn a wee man. Bless him, he has no notion 
of crying.
Anne tore herself away finally and enjoyed her walk to 
the Point after allthrough the long shadows of the 
sun-setting. Captain Jim was not in the living room of 
the lighthousebut another man was--a handsome
middle-aged manwith a strongclean-shaven chinwho 
was unknown to Anne. Neverthelesswhen she sat down
he began to talk to her with all the assurance of an 
old acquaintance. There was nothing amiss in what he 
said or the way he said itbut Anne rather resented 
such a cool taking-for-granted in a complete stranger. 
Her replies were frostyand as few as decency 
required. Nothing dauntedher companion talked on for 
several minutesthen excused himself and went away. 
Anne could have sworn there was a twinkle in his eye 
and it annoyed her. Who was the creature? There was 
something vaguely familiar about him but she was 
certain she had never seen him before. 
Captain Jim, who was that who just went out?she 
askedas Captain Jim came in. 
Marshall Elliott,answered the captain. 
Marshall Elliott!cried Anne. "OhCaptain Jim--it 
wasn't-- yesit WAS his voice--ohCaptain JimI 
didn't know him--and I was quite insulting to him! WHY 
didn't he tell me? He must have seen I didn't know 
him." 
He wouldn't say a word about it--he'd just enjoy the 
joke. Don't worry over snubbing him--he'll think it 
fun. Yes, Marshall's shaved off his beard at last and 
cut his hair. His party is in, you know. I didn't 
know him myself first time I saw him. He was up in 
Carter Flagg's store at the Glen the night after 
election day, along with a crowd of others, waiting for 
the news. About twelve the 'phone came through--the 
Liberals were in. Marshall just got up and walked 
out--he didn't cheer or shout--he left the others to do 
that, and they nearly lifted the roof off Carter's 
store, I reckon. Of course, all the Tories were over 
in Raymond Russell's store. Not much cheering THERE. 
Marshall went straight down the street to the side door 
of Augustus Palmer's barber shop. Augustus was in bed 
asleep, but Marhall hammered on the door until he got 
up and come down, wanting to know what all the racket 
was about. 
Come into your shop and do the best job you ever did 
in your lifeGus' said Marshall. `The Liberals are 
in and you're going to barber a good Grit before the 
sun rises.' 
Gus was mad as hops--partly because he'd been dragged 
out of bed, but more because he's a Tory. He vowed he 
wouldn't shave any man after twelve at night. 
`You'll do what I want you to dosonny' said 
Marshall`or I'll jest turn you over my knee and give 
you one of those spankings your mother forgot.' 
He'd have done it, too, and Gus knew it, for Marshall 
is as strong as an ox and Gus is only a midget of a 
man. So he gave in and towed Marshall in to the shop 
and went to work. `Now,' says he, `I'll barber you up, 
but if you say one word to me about the Grits getting 
in while I'm doing it I'll cut your throat with this 
razor,' says he. You wouldn't have thought mild little 
Gus could be so bloodthirsty, would you? Shows what 
party politics will do for a man. Marshall kept quiet 
and got his hair and beard disposed of and went home. 
When his old housekeeper heard him come upstairs she 
peeked out of her bedroom door to see whether 'twas him 
or the hired boy. And when she saw a strange man 
striding down the hall with a candle in his hand she 
screamed blue murder and fainted dead away. They had 
to send for the doctor before they could bring her to, 
and it was several days before she could look at 
Marshall without shaking all over.
Captain Jim had no fish. He seldom went out in his 
boat that summerand his long tramping expeditions 
were over. He spent a great deal of his time sitting 
by his seaward windowlooking out over the gulfwith 
his swiftly-whitening head leaning on his hand. He sat 
there tonight for many silent minuteskeeping some 
tryst with the past which Anne would not disturb. 
Presently he pointed to the iris of the West: 
That's beautiful, isn't, it, Mistress Blythe? But I 
wish you could have seen the sunrise this morning. It 
was a wonderful thing--wonderful. I've seen all kinds 
of sunrises come over that gulf. I've been all over 
the world, Mistress Blythe, and take it all in all, 
I've never seen a finer sight than a summer sunrise 
over the gulf. A man can't pick his time for dying, 
Mistress Blythe--jest got to go when the Great Captain 
gives His sailing orders. But if I could I'd go out 
when the morning comes across that water. I've watched 
it many a time and thought what a thing it would be to 
pass out through that great white glory to whatever was 
waiting beyant, on a sea that ain't mapped out on any 
airthly chart. I think, Mistress Blythe, that I'd find 
lost Margaret there.
Captain Jim had often talked to Anne of lost Margaret 
since he had told her the old story. His love for her 
trembled in every tone--that love that had never grown 
faint or forgetful. 
Anyway, I hope when my time comes I'll go quick and 
easy. I don't think I'm a coward, Mistress 
Blythe--I've looked an ugly death in the face more than 
once without blenching. But the thought of a lingering 
death does give me a queer, sick feeling of horror.
Don't talk about leaving us, dear, DEAR Captain, 
Jim,pleaded Annein a choked voicepatting the old 
brown handonce so strongbut now grown very feeble. 
What would we do without you?
Captain Jim smiled beautifully. 
Oh, you'd get along nicely--nicely--but you wouldn't 
forget the old man altogether, Mistress Blythe--no, I 
don't think you'll ever quite forget him. The race of 
Joseph always remembers one another. But it'll be a 
memory that won't hurt--I like to think that my memory 
won't hurt my friends--it'll always be kind of pleasant 
to them, I hope and believe. It won't be very long now 
before lost Margaret calls me, for the last time. I'll 
be all ready to answer. I jest spoke of this because 
there's a little favor I want to ask you. Here's this 
poor old Matey of mine--Captain Jim reached out a 
hand and poked the bigwarmvelvetygolden ball on 
the sofa. The First Mate uncoiled himself like a 
spring with a nicethroatycomfortable soundhalf 
purrhalf meowstretched his paws in airturned over 
and coiled himself up again. "HE'll miss me when I 
start on the V'yage. I can't bear to think of leaving 
the poor critter to starvelike he was left before. 
If anything happens to me will you give Matey a bite 
and a cornerMistress Blythe?" 
Indeed I will.
Then that is all I had on my mind. Your Little Jem is 
to have the few curious things I picked up--I've seen 
to that. And now I don't like to see tears in those 
pretty eyes, Mistress Blythe. I'll mebbe hang on for 
quite a spell yet. I heard you reading a piece of 
poetry one day last winter--one of Tennyson's pieces. 
I'd sorter like to hear it again, if you could recite 
it for me.
Softly and clearlywhile the seawind blew in on them
Anne repeated the beautiful lines of Tennyson's 
wonderful swan song-- "Crossing the Bar." The old 
captain kept time gently with his sinewy hand. 
Yes, yes, Mistress Blythe,he saidwhen she had 
finishedthat's it, that's it. He wasn't a sailor, 
you tell me--I dunno how he could have put an old 
sailor's feelings into words like that, if he wasn't 
one. He didn't want any `sadness o' farewells' and 
neither do I, Mistress Blythe--for all will be well 
with me and mine beyant the bar.
CHAPTER 36 
BEAUTY FOR ASHES 
Any news from Green Gables, Anne?
Nothing very especial,replied Annefolding up 
Marilla's letter. "Jake Donnell has been there 
shingling the roof. He is a full-fledged carpenter 
nowso it seems he has had his own way in regard to 
the choice of a life-work. You remember his mother 
wanted him to be a college professor. I shall never 
forget the day she came to the school and rated me for 
failing to call him St. Clair." 
Does anyone ever call him that now?
Evidently not. It seems that he has completely lived 
it down. Even his mother has succumbed. I always 
thought that a boy with Jake's chin and mouth would get 
his own way in the end. Diana writes me that Dora has 
a beau. Just think of it--that child!
Dora is seventeen,said Gilbert. "Charlie Sloane 
and I were both mad about you when you were seventeen
Anne." 
Really, Gilbert, we must be getting on in years,
said Annewith a half-rueful smilewhen children who 
were six when we thought ourselves grown up are old 
enough now to have beaux. Dora's is Ralph 
Andrews--Jane's brother. I remember him as a little, 
round, fat, white-headed fellow who was always at the 
foot of his class. But I understand he is quite a 
fine-looking young man now.
Dora will probably marry young. She's of the same 
type as Charlotta the Fourth--she'll never miss her 
first chance for fear she might not get another.
Well; if she marries Ralph I hope he will be a little 
more up-and-coming than his brother Billy,mused 
Anne. 
For instance,said Gilbertlaughinglet us hope 
he will be able to propose on his own account. Anne, 
would you have married Billy if he had asked you 
himself, instead of getting Jane to do it for him?
I might have.Anne went off into a shriek of 
laughter over the recollection of her first proposal. 
The shock of the whole thing might have hypnotized me 
into some such rash and foolish act. Let us be 
thankful he did it by proxy.
I had a letter from George Moore yesterday,said 
Lesliefrom the corner where she was reading. 
Oh, how is he?asked Anne interestedlyyet with an 
unreal feeling that she was inquiring about some one 
whom she did not know. 
He is well, but he finds it very hard to adapt himself 
to all the changes in his old home and friends. He is 
going to sea again in the spring. It's in his blood, 
he says, and he longs for it. But he told me something 
that made me glad for him, poor fellow. Before he 
sailed on the Four Sisters he was engaged to a girl at 
home. He did not tell me anything about her in 
Montreal, because he said he supposed she would have 
forgotten him and married someone else long ago, and 
with him, you see, his engagement and love was still a 
thing of the present. It was pretty hard on him, but 
when he got home he found she had never married and 
still cared for him. They are to be married this fall. 
I'm going to ask him to bring her over here for a 
little trip; he says he wants to come and see the place 
where he lived so many years without knowing it.
What a nice little romance,said Annewhose love 
for the romantic was immortal. "And to think she 
added with a sigh of self-reproach, that if I had had 
my way George Moore would never have come up from the 
grave in which his identity was buried. How I did 
fight against Gilbert's suggestion! WellI am 
punished: I shall never be able to have a different 
opinion from Gilbert's again! If I try to havehe 
will squelch me by casting George Moore's case up to 
me!" 
As if even that would squelch a woman!mocked 
Gilbert. "At least do not become my echoAnne. A 
little opposition gives spice to life . I do not want 
a wife like John MacAllister's over the harbor. No 
matter what he saysshe at once remarks in that drab
lifeless little voice of hers`That is very true
Johndear me!'" 
Anne and Leslie laughed. Anne's laughter was silver 
and Leslie's goldenand the combination of the two was 
as satisfactory as a perfect chord in music. 
Susancoming in on the heels of the laughterechoed 
it with a resounding sigh. 
Why, Susan, what is the matter?asked Gilbert. 
There's nothing wrong with little Jem, is there, 
Susan?cried Annestarting up in alarm. 
No, no, calm yourself, Mrs. Doctor, dear. Something 
has happened, though. Dear me, everything has gone 
catawampus with me this week. I spoiled the bread, as 
you know too well--and I scorched the doctor's best 
shirt bosom--and I broke your big platter. And now, on 
the top of all this, comes word that my sister Matilda 
has broken her leg and wants me to go and stay with her 
for a spell.
Oh, I'm very sorry--sorry that your sister has met 
with such an accident, I mean,exclaimed Anne. 
Ah, well, man was made to mourn, Mrs. Doctor, dear. 
That sounds as if it ought to be in the Bible, but they 
tell me a person named Burns wrote it. And there is no 
doubt that we are born to trouble as the sparks fly 
upward. As for Matilda, I do not know what to think of 
her. None of our family ever broke their legs before. 
But whatever she has done she is still my sister, and I 
feel that it is my duty to go and wait on her, if you 
can spare me for a few weeks, Mrs. Doctor, dear.
Of course, Susan, of course. I can get someone to 
help me while you are gone.
If you cannot I will not go, Mrs. Doctor, dear, 
Matilda's leg to the contrary notwithstanding. I will 
not have you worried, and that blessed child upset in 
consequence, for any number of legs.
Oh, you must go to your sister at once, Susan. I can 
get a girl from the cove, who will do for a time.
Anne, will you let me come and stay with you while 
Susan is away?exclaimed Leslie. "Do! I'd love 
to--and it would be an act of charity on your part. 
I'm so horribly lonely over there in that big barn of a 
house. There's so little to do--and at night I'm worse 
than lonely--I'm frightened and nervous in spite of 
locked doors. There was a tramp around two days ago." 
Anne joyfully agreedand next day Leslie was installed 
as an inmate of the little house of dreams. Miss 
Cornelia warmly approved of the arrangement. 
It seems Providential,she told Anne in confidence. 
I'm sorry for Matilda Clow, but since she had to break 
her leg it couldn't have happened at a better time. 
Leslie will be here while Owen Ford is in Four Winds, 
and those old cats up at the Glen won't get the chance 
to meow, as they would if she was living over there 
alone and Owen going to see her. They are doing enough 
of it as it is, because she doesn't put on mourning. I 
said to one of them, `If you mean she should put on 
mourning for George Moore, it seems to me more like his 
resurrection than his funeral; and if it's Dick you 
mean, I confess _I_ can't see the propriety of going 
into weeds for a man who died thirteen years ago and 
good riddance then!' And when old Louisa Baldwin 
remarked to me that she thought it very strange that 
Leslie should never have suspected it wasn't her own 
husband _I_ said, `YOU never suspected it wasn't Dick 
Moore, and you were next-door neighbor to him all his 
life, and by nature you're ten times as suspicious as 
Leslie.' But you can't stop some people's tongues, 
Anne, dearie, and I'm real thankful Leslie will be 
under your roof while Owen is courting her.
Owen Ford came to the little house one August evening 
when Leslie and Anne were absorbed in worshipping the 
baby. He paused at the open door of the living room
unseen by the two withingazing with greedy eyes at 
the beautiful picture. Leslie sat on the floor with 
the baby in her lapmaking ecstatic dabs at his fat 
little hands as he fluttered them in the air. 
Oh, you dear, beautiful, beloved baby,she mumbled
catching one wee hand and covering it with kisses. 
Isn't him ze darlingest itty sing,crooned Anne
hanging over the arm of her chair adoringly. "Dem itty 
wee pads are ze very tweetest handies in ze whole big 
worldisn't deyyou darling itty man." 
Annein the months before Little Jem's cominghad 
pored diligently over several wise volumesand pinned 
her faith to one in especialSir Oracle on the Care 
and Training of Children.Sir Oracle implored 
parents by all they held sacred never to talk "baby 
talk" to their children. Infants should invariably be 
addressed in classical language from the moment of 
their birth. So should they learn to speak English 
undefiled from their earliest utterance. "How 
demanded Sir Oracle, can a mother reasonably expect 
her child to learn correct speechwhen she continually 
accustoms its impressionable gray matter to such absurd 
expressions and distortions of our noble tongue as 
thoughtless mothers inflict every day on the helpless 
creatures committed to their care? Can a child who is 
constantly called `tweet itty wee singie' ever attain 
to any proper conception of his own being and 
possibilities and destiny?" 
Anne was vastly impressed with thisand informed 
Gilbert that she meant to make it an inflexible rule 
neverunder any circumstancesto talk "baby talk" to 
her children. Gilbert agreed with herand they made a 
solemn compact on the subject--a compact which Anne 
shamelessly violated the very first moment Little Jem 
was laid in her arms. "Ohthe darling itty wee 
sing!" she had exclaimed. And she had continued to 
violate it ever since. When Gilbert teased her she 
laughed Sir Oracle to scorn. 
He never had any children of his own, Gilbert--I am 
positive he hadn't or he would never have written such 
rubbish. You just can't help talking baby talk to a 
baby. It comes natural--and it's RIGHT. It would be 
inhuman to talk to those tiny, soft, velvety little 
creatures as we do to great big boys and girls. Babies 
want love and cuddling and all the sweet baby talk they 
can get, and Little Jem is going to have it, bless his 
dear itty heartums.
But you're the worst I ever heard, Anne,protested 
Gilbertwhonot being a mother but only a fatherwas 
not wholly convinced yet that Sir Oracle was wrong. "I 
never heard anything like the way you talk to that 
child." 
Very likely you never did. Go away--go away. Didn't 
I bring up three pairs of Hammond twins before I was 
eleven? You and Sir Oracle are nothing but 
cold-blooded theorists. Gilbert, JUST look at him! 
He's smiling at me--he knows what we're talking about. 
And oo dest agwees wif evy word muzzer says, don't oo, 
angel-lover?
Gilbert put his arm about them. "Oh you mothers!" he 
said. "You mothers! God knew what He was about when 
He made you." 
So Little Jem was talked to and loved and cuddled; and 
he throve as became a child of the house of dreams. 
Leslie was quite as foolish over him as Anne was. When 
their work was done and Gilbert was out of the way
they gave themselves over to shameless orgies of 
love-making and ecstasies of adorationsuch as that in 
which Owen Ford had surprised them. 
Leslie was the first to become aware of him. Even in 
the twilight Anne could see the sudden whiteness that 
swept over her beautiful faceblotting out the crimson 
of lip and cheeks. 
Owen came forwardeagerlyblind for a moment to Anne. 
Leslie!he saidholding out his hand. It was the 
first time he had ever called her by her name; but the 
hand Leslie gave him was cold; and she was very quiet 
all the eveningwhile Anne and Gilbert and Owen 
laughed and talked together. Before his call ended she 
excused herself and went upstairs . Owen's gay spirits 
flagged and he went away soon after with a downcast 
air. 
Gilbert looked at Anne. 
Anne, what are you up to? There's something going on 
that I don't understand. The whole air here tonight 
has been charged with electricity. Leslie sits like 
the muse of tragedy; Owen Ford jokes and laughs on the 
surface, and watches Leslie with the eyes of his soul. 
You seem all the time to be bursting with some 
suppressed excitement. Own up. What secret have you 
been keeping from your deceived husband?
Don't be a goose, Gilbert,was Anne's conjugal 
reply. "As for Leslieshe is absurd and I'm going up 
to tell her so." 
Anne found Leslie at the dormer window of her room. 
The little place was filled with the rhythmic thunder 
of the sea. Leslie sat with locked hands in the misty 
moonshine--a beautifulaccusing presence. 
Anne,she said in a lowreproachful voicedid you 
know Owen Ford was coming to Four Winds?
I did,said Anne brazenly. 
Oh, you should have told me, Anne,Leslie cried 
passionately. "If I had known I would have gone 
away--I wouldn't have stayed here to meet him. You 
should have told me. It wasn't fair of youAnne--oh
it wasn't fair!" 
Leslie's lips were trembling and her whole form was 
tense with emotion. But Anne laughed heartlessly. She 
bent over and kissed Leslie's upturned reproachful 
face. 
Leslie, you are an adorable goose. Owen Ford didn't 
rush from the Pacific to the Atlantic from a burning 
desire to see ME. Neither do I believe that he was 
inspired by any wild and frenzied passion for Miss 
Cornelia. Take off your tragic airs, my dear friend, 
and fold them up and put them away in lavender. You'll 
never need them again. There are some people who can 
see through a grindstone when there is a hole in it, 
even if you cannot. I am not a prophetess, but I shall 
venture on a prediction. The bitterness of life is 
over for you. After this you are going to have the 
joys and hopes--and I daresay the sorrows, too--of a 
happy woman. The omen of the shadow of Venus did come 
true for you, Leslie. The year in which you saw it 
brought your life's best gift for you--your love for 
Owen Ford. Now, go right to bed and have a good 
sleep.
Leslie obeyed orders in so far that she went to bed: 
but it may be questioned if she slept much. I do not 
think she dared to dream wakingly; life had been so 
hard for this poor Lesliethe path on which she had 
had to walk had been so straitthat she could not 
whisper to her own heart the hopes that might wait on 
the future. But she watched the great revolving light 
bestarring the short hours of the summer nightand her 
eyes grew soft and bright and young once more. Nor
when Owen Ford came next dayto ask her to go with him 
to the shoredid she say him nay.
CHAPTER 37 
MISS CORNELIA MAKES A STARTLING ANNOUNCEMENT 
Miss Cornelia sailed down to the little house one 
drowsy afternoonwhen the gulf was the faint
bleached blue of the August seasand the orange lilies 
at the gate of Anne's garden held up their imperial 
cups to be filled with the molten gold of August 
sunshine. Not that Miss Cornelia concerned herself 
with painted oceans or sun-thirsty lilies. She sat in 
her favorite rocker in unusual idleness. She sewed 
notneither did she spin. Nor did she say a single 
derogatory word concerning any portion of mankind. In 
shortMiss Cornelia's conversation was singularly 
devoid of spice that dayand Gilbertwho had stayed 
home to listen to herinstead of going a-fishingas 
he had intendedfelt himself aggrieved. What had come 
over Miss Cornelia? She did not look cast down or 
worried. On the contrarythere was a certain air of 
nervous exultation about her. 
Where is Leslie?she asked--not as if it mattered 
much either. 
Owen and she went raspberrying in the woods back of 
her farm,answered Anne. "They won't be back before 
supper time-- if then." 
They don't seem to have any idea that there is such a 
thing as a clock,said Gilbert. "I can't get to the 
bottom of that affair. I'm certain you women pulled 
strings. But Anneundutiful wifewon't tell me. 
Will youMiss Cornelia?" 
No, I shall not. But,said Miss Corneliawith the 
air of one determined to take the plunge and have it 
overI will tell you something else. I came today on 
purpose to tell it. I am going to be married.
Anne and Gilbert were silent. If Miss Cornelia had 
announced her intention of going out to the channel and 
drowning herself the thing might have been believable. 
This was not. So they waited. Of course Miss Cornelia 
had made a mistake. 
Well, you both look sort of kerflummexed,said Miss 
Corneliawith a twinkle in her eyes. Now that the 
awkward moment of revelation was overMiss Cornelia 
was her own woman again. "Do you think I'm too young 
and inexperienced for matrimony?" 
You know--it IS rather staggering,said Gilbert
trying to gather his wits together. "I've heard you 
say a score of times that you wouldn't marry the best 
man in the world." 
I'm not going to marry the best man in the world,
retorted Miss Cornelia. "Marshall Elliott is a long 
way from being the best." 
Are you going to marry Marshall Elliott?exclaimed 
Annerecovering her power of speech under this second 
shock. 
Yes. I could have had him any time these twenty years 
if I'd lifted my finger. But do you suppose I was 
going to walk into church beside a perambulating 
haystack like that?
I am sure we are very glad--and we wish you all 
possible happiness,said Annevery flatly and 
inadequatelyas she felt. She was not prepared for 
such an occasion. She had never imagined herself 
offering betrothal felicitations to Miss Cornelia. 
Thanks, I knew you would,said Miss Cornelia. "You 
are the first of my friends to know it." 
We shall be so sorry to lose you, though, dear Miss 
Cornelia,said Annebeginning to be a little sad and 
sentimental. 
Oh, you won't lose me,said Miss Cornelia 
unsentimentally. "You don't suppose I would live over 
harbor with all those MacAllisters and Elliotts and 
Crawfordsdo you? `From the conceit of the Elliotts
the pride of the MacAllisters and the vain-glory of the 
Crawfordsgood Lord deliver us.' Marshall is coming 
to live at my place. I'm sick and tired of hired men. 
That Jim Hastings I've got this summer is positively 
the worst of the species. He would drive anyone to 
getting married. What do you think? He upset the 
churn yesterday and spilled a big churning of cream 
over the yard. And not one whit concerned about it was 
he! Just gave a foolish laugh and said cream was good 
for the land. Wasn't that like a man? I told him I 
wasn't in the habit of fertilising my back yard with 
cream." 
Well, I wish you all manner of happiness too, Miss 
Cornelia,said Gilbertsolemnly; "but he added, 
unable to resist the temptation to tease Miss Cornelia, 
despite Anne's imploring eyes, I fear your day of 
independence is done. As you knowMarshall Elliott is 
a very determined man." 
I like a man who can stick to a thing,retorted Miss 
Cornelia. "Amos Grantwho used to be after me long 
agocouldn't. You never saw such a weather-vane. He 
jumped into the pond to drown himself once and then 
changed his mind and swum out again. Wasn't that like 
a man? Marshall would have stuck to it and drowned." 
And he has a bit of a temper, they tell me,
persisted Gilbert. 
He wouldn't be an Elliott if he hadn't. I'm thankful 
he has. It will be real fun to make him mad. And you 
can generally do something with a tempery man when it 
comes to repenting time. But you can't do anything 
with a man who just keeps placid and aggravating.
You know he's a Grit, Miss Cornelia.
Yes, he IS,admitted Miss Cornelia rather sadly. 
And of course there is no hope of making a 
Conservative of him. But at least he is a 
Presbyterian. So I suppose I shall have to be 
satisfied with that.
Would you marry him if he were a Methodist, Miss 
Cornelia?
No, I would not. Politics is for this world, but 
religion is for both.
And you may be a `relict' after all, Miss Cornelia.
Not I. Marshall will live me out. The Elliotts are 
long-lived, and the Bryants are not.
When are you to be married?asked Anne. 
In about a month's time. My wedding dress is to be 
navy blue silk. And I want to ask you, Anne, dearie, 
if you think it would be all right to wear a veil with 
a navy blue dress. I've always thought I'd like to 
wear a veil if I ever got married. Marshall says to 
have it if I want to. Isn't that like a man?
Why shouldn't you wear it if you want to?asked 
Anne. 
Well, one doesn't want to be different from other 
people,said Miss Corneliawho was not noticeably 
like anyone else on the face of the earth. "As I say
I do fancy a veil. But maybe it shouldn't be worn with 
any dress but a white one. Please tell meAnne
deariewhat you really think. I'll go by your 
advice." 
I don't think veils are usually worn with any but 
white dresses,admitted Annebut that is merely a 
convention; and I am like Mr. Elliott, Miss Cornelia. 
I don't see any good reason why you shouldn't have a 
veil if you want one.
But Miss Corneliawho made her calls in calico 
wrappersshook her head. 
If it isn't the proper thing I won't wear it,she 
saidwith a sigh of regret for a lost dream. 
Since you are determined to be married, Miss 
Cornelia,said Gilbert solemnlyI shall give you 
the excellent rules for the management of a husband 
which my grandmother gave my mother when she married my 
father.
Well, I reckon I can manage Marshall Elliott,said 
Miss Cornelia placidly. "But let us hear your rules." 
The first one is, catch him.
He's caught. Go on.
The second one is, feed him well.
With enough pie. What next?
The third and fourth are--keep your eye on him.
I believe you,said Miss Cornelia emphatically. 
CHAPTER 38 
RED ROSES 
The garden of the little house was a haunt beloved of 
bees and reddened by late roses that August. The 
little house folk lived much in itand were given to 
taking picnic suppers in the grassy corner beyond the 
brook and sitting about in it through the twilights 
when great night moths sailed athwart the velvet gloom. 
One evening Owen Ford found Leslie alone in it. Anne 
and Gilbert were awayand Susanwho was expected back 
that nighthad not yet returned. 
The northern sky was amber and pale green over the fir 
tops. The air was coolfor August was nearing 
Septemberand Leslie wore a crimson scarf over her 
white dress. Together they wandered through the 
littlefriendlyflower-crowded paths in silence. 
Owen must go soon. His holiday was nearly over. 
Leslie found her heart beating wildly. She knew that 
this beloved garden was to be the scene of the binding 
words that must seal their as yet unworded 
understanding. 
 Some evenings a strange odor blows down the air of 
this garden, like a phantom perfume,said Owen. "I 
have never been able to discover from just what flower 
it comes. It is elusive and haunting and wonderfully 
sweet. I like to fancy it is the soul of Grandmother 
Selwyn passing on a little visit to the old spot she 
loved so well. There should be a lot of friendly 
ghosts about this little old house." 
I have lived under its roof only a month,said 
Lesliebut I love it as I never loved the house over 
there where I have lived all my life.
This house was builded and consecrated by love,said 
Owen. "Such housesMUST exert an influence over those 
who live in them. And this garden--it is over sixty 
years old and the history of a thousand hopes and joys 
is written in its blossoms. Some of those flowers were 
actually set out by the schoolmaster's brideand she 
has been dead for thirty years. Yet they bloom on 
every summer. Look at those red rosesLeslie--how 
they queen it over everything else!" 
I love the red roses,said Leslie. "Anne likes the 
pink ones bestand Gilbert likes the white. But I 
want the crimson ones. They satisfy some craving in me 
as no other flower does." 
These roses are very late--they bloom after all the 
others have gone--and they hold all the warmth and soul 
of the summer come to fruition,said Owenplucking 
some of the glowinghalf-opened buds. 
The rose is the flower of love--the world has 
acclaimed it so for centuries. The pink roses are 
love hopeful and expectant--the white roses are love 
dead or forsaken--but the red roses--ah, Leslie, what 
are the red roses?
Love triumphant,said Leslie in a low voice. 
Yes--love triumphant and perfect. Leslie, you 
know--you understand. I have loved you from the 
first. And I KNOW you love me--I don't need to ask 
you. But I want to hear you say it--my darling-- my 
darling!
Leslie said something in a very low and tremulous 
voice. Their hands and lips met; it was life's 
supreme moment for them and as they stood there in the 
old gardenwith its many years of love and delight and 
sorrow and gloryhe crowned her shining hair with the 
redred rose of a love triumphant. 
Anne and Gilbert returned presentlyaccompanied by 
Captain Jim. Anne lighted a few sticks of driftwood in 
the fireplacefor love of the pixy flamesand they 
sat around it for an hour of good fellowship. 
When I sit looking at a driftwood fire it's easy to 
believe I'm young again,said Captain Jim. 
Can you read futures in the fire, Captain Jim?asked 
Owen. 
Captain Jim looked at them all affectionately and then 
back again at Leslie's vivid face and glowing eyes. 
I don't need the fire to read your futures,he said. 
I see happiness for all of you--all of you--for Leslie 
and Mr. Ford--and the doctor here and Mistress 
Blythe--and Little Jem--and children that ain't born 
yet but will be. Happiness for you all--though, mind 
you, I reckon you'll have your troubles and worries and 
sorrows, too. They're bound to come--and no house, 
whether it's a palace or a little house of dreams, can 
bar 'em out. But they won't get the better of you if 
you face 'em TOGETHER with love and trust. You can 
weather any storm with them two for compass and 
pilot.
The old man rose suddenly and placed one hand on 
Leslie's head and one on Anne's. 
Two good, sweet women,he said. "True and faithful 
and to be depended on. Your husbands will have honor 
in the gates because of you--your children will rise up 
and call you blessed in the years to come." 
There was a strange solemnity about the little scene. 
Anne and Leslie bowed as those receiving a 
benediction. Gilbert suddenly brushed his hand over 
his eyes; Owen Ford was rapt as one who can see 
visions. All were silent for a space. The little 
house of dreams added another poignant and 
unforgettable moment to its store of memories. 
I must be going now,said Captain Jim slowly at 
last. He took up his hat and looked lingeringly about 
the room. 
Good night, all of you,he saidas he went out. 
Annepierced by the unusual wistfulness of his 
farewellran to the door after him. 
Come back soon, Captain Jim,she calledas he 
passed through the little gate hung between the firs. 
Ay, ay,he called cheerily back to her. But Captain 
Jim had sat by the old fireside of the house of dreams 
for the last time. 
Anne went slowly back to the others. 
It's so--so pitiful to think of him going all alone 
down to that lonely Point,she said. "And there is 
no one to welcome him there." 
Captain Jim is such good company for others that one 
can't imagine him being anything but good company for 
himself,said Owen. "But he must often be lonely. 
There was a touch of the seer about him tonight--he 
spoke as one to whom it had been given to speak. Well
I must be goingtoo." 
Anne and Gilbert discreetly melted away; but when Owen 
had gone Anne returnedto find Leslie standing by the 
hearth. 
Oh, Leslie--I know--and I'm so glad, dear,she said
putting her arms about her. 
Anne, my happiness frightens me,whispered Leslie. 
It seems too great to be real--I'm afraid to speak of 
it--to think of it. It seems to me that it must just 
be another dream of this house of dreams and it will 
vanish when I leave here.
Well, you are not going to leave here--until Owen 
takes you. You are going to stay with me until that 
times comes. Do you think I'd let you go over to that 
lonely, sad place again?
Thank you, dear. I meant to ask you if I might stay 
with you. I didn't want to go back there--it would 
seem like going back into the chill and dreariness of 
the old life again. Anne, Anne, what a friend you've 
been to me--`a good, sweet woman--true and faithful and 
to be depended on'--Captain Jim summed you up.
He said `women,' not `woman,'smiled Anne. "Perhaps 
Captain Jim sees us both through the rose-colored 
spectacles of his love for us. But we can try to live 
up to his belief in usat least." 
Do you remember, Anne,said Leslie slowlythat I 
once said--that night we met on the shore--that I hated 
my good looks? I did--then. It always seemed to me 
that if I had been homely Dick would never have thought 
of me. I hated my beauty because it had attracted him, 
but now--oh, I'm glad that I have it. It's all I have 
to offer Owen,--his artist soul delights in it. I feel 
as if I do not come to him quite empty-handed.
Owen loves your beauty, Leslie. Who would not? But 
it's foolish of you to say or think that that is all 
you bring him. HE will tell you that--I needn't. And 
now I must lock up. I expected Susan back tonight, but 
she has not come.
Oh, yes, here I am, Mrs. Doctor, dear,said Susan
entering unexpectedly from the kitchenand puffing 
like a hen drawing rails at that! It's quite a walk 
from the Glen down here.
I'm glad to see you back, Susan. How is your 
sister?
She is able to sit up, but of course she cannot walk 
yet. However, she is very well able to get on without 
me now, for her daughter has come home for her 
vacation. And I am thankful to be back, Mrs. Doctor, 
dear. Matilda's leg was broken and no mistake, but her 
tongue was not. She would talk the legs off an iron 
pot, that she would, Mrs. Doctor, dear, though I grieve 
to say it of my own sister. She was always a great 
talker and yet she was the first of our family to get 
married. She really did not care much about marrying 
James Clow, but she could not bear to disoblige him. 
Not but what James is a good man--the only fault I have 
to find with him is that he always starts in to say 
grace with such an unearthly groan, Mrs. Doctor, dear. 
It always frightens my appetite clear away. And 
speaking of getting married, Mrs. Doctor, dear, is it 
true that Cornelia Bryant is going to be married to 
Marshall Elliott?
Yes, quite true, Susan.
Well, Mrs. Doctor, dear, it does NOT seem to me fair. 
Here is me, who never said a word against the men, and 
I cannot get married nohow. And there is Cornelia 
Bryant, who is never done abusing them, and all she has 
to do is to reach out her hand and pick one up, as it 
were. It is a very strange world, Mrs. Doctor, dear.
There's another world, you know, Susan.
Yes,said Susan with a heavy sighbut, Mrs. 
Doctor, dear, there is neither marrying nor giving in 
marriage there.
CHAPTER 39 
CAPTAIN JIM CROSSES THE BAR 
One day in late September Owen Ford's book came at 
last. Captain Jim had gone faithfully to the Glen post 
office every day for a monthexpecting it. This day 
he had not goneand Leslie brought his copy home with 
hers and Anne's. 
We'll take it down to him this evening,said Anne
excited as a schoolgirl. 
The long walk to the Point on that clearbeguiling 
evening along the red harbor road was very pleasant. 
Then the sun dropped down behind the western hills into 
some valley that must have been full of lost sunsets
and at the same instant the big light flashed out on 
the white tower of the point. 
Captain Jim is never late by the fraction of a 
second,said Leslie. 
Neither Anne nor Leslie ever forgot Captain Jim's face 
when they gave him the book--HIS booktransfigured and 
glorified. The cheeks that had been blanched of late 
suddenly flamed with the color of boyhood; his eyes 
glowed with all the fire of youth; but his hands 
trembled as he opened it. 
It was called simply The Life-Book of Captain Jimand 
on the title page the names of Owen Ford and James Boyd 
were printed as collaborators. The frontispiece was a 
photograph of Captain Jim himselfstanding at the door 
of the lighthouselooking across the gulf. Owen Ford 
had "snapped" him one day while the book was being 
written. Captain Jim had known thisbut he had not 
known that the picture was to be in the book. 
Just think of it,he saidthe old sailor right 
there in a real printed book. This is the proudest day 
of my life. I'm like to bust, girls. There'll be no 
sleep for me tonight. I'll read my book clean through 
before sun-up.
We'll go right away and leave you free to begin it,
said Anne. 
Captain Jim had been handling the book in a kind of 
reverent rapture. Now he decidedly closed it and laid 
it aside. 
No, no, you're not going away before you take a cup of 
tea with the old man,he protested. "I couldn't hear 
to that--could youMatey? The life-book will keepI 
reckon. I've waited for it this many a year. I can 
wait a little longer while I'm enjoying my friends." 
Captain Jim moved about getting his kettle on to boil
and setting out his bread and butter. Despite his 
excitement he did not move with his old briskness. His 
movements were slow and halting. But the girls did not 
offer to help him. They knew it would hurt his 
feelings. 
You just picked the right evening to visit me,he 
saidproducing a cake from his cupboard. "Leetle 
Joe's mother sent me down a big basket full of cakes 
and pies today. A blessing on all good cookssays I. 
Look at this purty cakeall frosting and nuts. 
'Tain't often I can entertain in such style. Set in
girlsset in! We'll `tak a cup o' kindness yet for 
auld lang syne.'" 
The girls "set in" right merrily. The tea was up to 
Captain Jim's best brewing. Little Joe's mother's cake 
was the last word in cakes; Captain Jim was the prince 
of gracious hostsnever even permitting his eyes to 
wander to the corner where the life-book layin all 
its bravery of green and gold. But when his door 
finally closed behind Anne and Leslie they knew that he 
went straight to itand as they walked home they 
pictured the delight of the old man poring over the 
printed pages wherein his own life was portrayed with 
all the charm and color of reality itself. 
I wonder how he will like the ending--the ending I 
suggested,said Leslie. 
She was never to know. Early the next morning Anne 
awakened to find Gilbert bending over herfully 
dressedand with an expression of anxiety on his face. 
Are you called out?she asked drowsily. 
No. Anne, I'm afraid there's something wrong at the 
Point. It's an hour after sunrise now, and the light 
is still burning. You know it has always been a matter 
of pride with Captain Jim to start the light the moment 
the sun sets, and put it out the moment it rises.
Anne sat up in dismay. Through her window she saw the 
light blinking palely against the blue skies of dawn. 
Perhaps he has fallen asleep over his life-book,she 
said anxiouslyor become so absorbed in it that he 
has forgotten the light.
Gilbert shook his head. 
That wouldn't be like Captain Jim. Anyway, I'm going 
down to see.
Wait a minute and I'll go with you,exclaimed Anne. 
Oh, yes, I must--Little Jem will sleep for an hour 
yet, and I'll call Susan. You may need a woman's help 
if Captain Jim is ill.
It was an exquisite morningfull of tints and sounds 
at once ripe and delicate. The harbor was sparkling 
and dimpling like a girl; white gulls were soaring over 
the dunes; beyond the bar was a shiningwonderful sea. 
The long fields by the shore were dewy and fresh in 
that first finepurely-tinted light. The wind came 
dancing and whistling up the channel to replace the 
beautiful silence with a music more beautiful still. 
Had it not been for the baleful star on the white tower 
that early walk would have been a delight to Anne and 
Gilbert. But they went softly with fear. 
Their knock was not responded to. Gilbert opened the 
door and they went in. 
The old room was very quiet. On the table were the 
remnants of the little evening feast. The lamp still 
burned on the corner stand. The First Mate was asleep 
in a square of sunshine by the sofa. 
Captain Jim lay on the sofawith his hands clasped 
over the life-bookopen at the last pagelying on his 
breast. His eyes were closed and on his face was a 
look of the most perfect peace and happiness--the look 
of one who has long sought and found at last. 
He is asleep?whispered Anne tremulously. 
Gilbert went to the sofa and bent over him for a few 
moments. Then he straightened up. 
Yes, he sleeps--well,he added quietly. "Anne
Captain Jim has crossed the bar." 
They could not know precisely at what hour he had died
but Anne always believed that he had had his wishand 
went out when the morning came across the gulf. Out on 
that shining tide his spirit driftedover the sunrise 
sea of pearl and silverto the haven where lost 
Margaret waitedbeyond the storms and calms. 
CHAPTER 40 
FAREWELL TO THE HOUSE OF DREAMS 
Captain Jim was buried in the little over-harbor 
graveyardvery near to the spot where the wee white 
lady slept. His relatives put up a very expensive
very ugly "monument"--a monument at which he would 
have poked sly fun had he seen it in life. But his 
real monument was in the hearts of those who knew him
and in the book that was to live for generations. 
Leslie mourned that Captain Jim had not lived to see 
the amazing success of it. 
How he would have delighted in the reviews--they are 
almost all so kindly. And to have seen his life-book 
heading the lists of the best sellers--oh, if he could 
just have lived to see it, Anne!
But Annedespite her griefwas wiser. 
It was the book itself he cared for, Leslie--not what 
might be said of it--and he had it. He had read it all 
through. That last night must have been one of the 
greatest happiness for him--with the quick, painless 
ending he had hoped for in the morning. I am glad for 
Owen's sake and yours that the book is such a 
success--but Captain Jim was satisfied--I KNOW.
The lighthouse star still kept a nightly vigil; a 
substitute keeper had been sent to the Pointuntil 
such time as an all-wise government could decide which 
of many applicants was best fitted for the place--or 
had the strongest pull. The First Mate was at home in 
the little housebeloved by Anne and Gilbert and 
Leslieand tolerated by a Susan who had small liking 
for cats. 
I can put up with him for the sake of Captain Jim, 
Mrs. Doctor, dear, for I liked the old man. And I will 
see that he gets bite and sup, and every mouse the 
traps account for. But do not ask me to do more than 
that, Mrs. Doctor, dear. Cats is cats, and take my 
word for it, they will never be anything else. And at 
least, Mrs. Doctor, dear, do keep him away from the 
blessed wee man. Picture to yourself how awful it 
would be if he was to suck the darling's breath.
That might be fitly called a CAT-astrophe,said 
Gilbert. 
Oh, you may laugh, doctor, dear, but it would be no 
laughing matter.
Cats never suck babies' breaths,said Gilbert. 
That is only an old superstition, Susan.
Oh, well, it may be a superstition or it may not, 
doctor, dear. All that I know is, it has happened. My 
sister's husband's nephew's wife's cat sucked their 
baby's breath, and the poor innocent was all but gone 
when they found it. And superstition or not, if I find 
that yellow beast lurking near our baby I will whack 
him with the poker, Mrs. Doctor, dear.
Mr. and Mrs. Marshall Elliott were living comfortably 
and harmoniously in the green house. Leslie was busy 
with sewingfor she and Owen were to be married at 
Christmas. Anne wondered what she would do when Leslie 
was gone. 
Changes come all the time. Just as soon as things get 
really nice they change,she said with a sigh. 
The old Morgan place up at the Glen is for sale,
said Gilbertapropos of nothing in especial. 
Is it?asked Anne indifferently. 
Yes. Now that Mr. Morgan has gone, Mrs. Morgan wants 
to go to live with her children in Vancouver. She will 
sell cheaply, for a big place like that in a small 
village like the Glen will not be very easy to dispose 
of.
Well, it's certainly a beautiful place, so it is 
likely she will find a purchaser,said Anne
absentlywondering whether she should hemstitch or 
feather-stitch little Jem's "short" dresses. He was 
to be shortened the next weekand Anne felt ready to 
cry at the thought of it. 
Suppose we buy it, Anne?remarked Gilbert quietly. 
Anne dropped her sewing and stared at him. 
You're not in earnest, Gilbert?
Indeed I am, dear.
And leave this darling spot--our house of dreams?
said Anne incredulously. "OhGilbertit's--it's 
unthinkable!" 
Listen patiently to me, dear. I know just how you 
feel about it. I feel the same. But we've always 
known we would have to move some day.
Oh, but not so soon, Gilbert--not just yet.
We may never get such a chance again. If we don't buy 
the Morgan place someone else will--and there is no 
other house in the Glen we would care to have, and no 
other really good site on which to build. This little 
house is--well, it is and has been what no other house 
can ever be to us, I admit, but you know it is 
out-of-the-way down here for a doctor. We have felt 
the inconvenience, though we've made the best of it. 
And it's a tight fit for us now. Perhaps, in a few 
years, when Jem wants a room of his own, it will be 
entirely too small.
Oh, I know--I know,said Annetears filling her 
eyes. "I know all that can be said against itbut I 
love it so--and it's so beautiful here." 
You would find it very lonely here after Leslie 
goes--and Captain Jim has gone too. The Morgan place 
is beautiful, and in time we would love it. You know 
you have always admired it, Anne.
Oh, yes, but--but--this has all seemed to come up so 
suddenly, Gilbert. I'm dizzy. Ten minutes ago I had 
no thought of leaving this dear spot. I was planning 
what I meant to do for it in the spring-- what I meant 
to do in the garden. And if we leave this place who 
will get it? It IS out-of-the-way, so it's likely some 
poor, shiftless, wandering family will rent it--and 
over-run it--and oh, that would be desecration. It 
would hurt me horribly.
I know. But we cannot sacrifice our own interests to 
such considerations, Anne-girl. The Morgan place will 
suit us in every essential particular--we really can't 
afford to miss such a chance. Think of that big lawn 
with those magnificent old trees; and of that splendid 
hardwood grove behind it--twelve acres of it. What a 
play place for our children! There's a fine orchard, 
too, and you've always admired that high brick wall 
around the garden with the door in it--you've thought 
it was so like a story-book garden. And there is 
almost as fine a view of the harbor and the dunes from 
the Morgan place as from here.
You can't see the lighthouse star from it.
Yes, You can see it from the attic window. THERE'S 
another advantage, Anne-girl--you love big garrets.
There's no brook in the garden.
Well, no, but there is one running through the maple 
grove into the Glen pond. And the pond itself isn't 
far away. You'll be able to fancy you have your own 
Lake of Shining Waters again.
Well, don't say anything more about it just now, 
Gilbert. Give me time to think--to get used to the 
idea.
All right. There is no great hurry, of course. 
Only--if we decide to buy, it would be well to be 
moved in and settled before winter.
Gilbert went outand Anne put away Little Jem's short 
dresses with trembling hands. She could not sew any 
more that day. With tear-wet eyes she wandered over 
the little domain where she had reigned so happy a 
queen. The Morgan place was all that Gilbert claimed. 
The grounds were beautifulthe house old enough to 
have dignity and repose and traditionsand new enough 
to be comfortable and up-to-date. Anne had always 
admired it; but admiring is not loving; and she loved 
this house of dreams so much. She loved EVERYTHING 
about it--the garden she had tendedand which so many 
women had tended before her--the gleam and sparkle of 
the little brook that crept so roguishly across the 
corner--the gate between the creaking fir trees--the 
old red sandstone step--the stately Lombardies-- the 
two tiny quaint glass cupboards over the chimney- piece 
in the living-room--the crooked pantry door in the 
kitchen-- the two funny dormer windows upstairs--the 
little jog in the staircase-- whythese things were a 
part of her! How could she leave them? 
And how this little houseconsecrated aforetime by 
love and joyhad been re-consecrated for her by her 
happiness and sorrow! Here she had spent her bridal 
moon; here wee Joyce had lived her one brief day; here 
the sweetness of motherhood had come again with Little 
Jem; here she had heard the exquisite music of her 
baby's cooing laughter; here beloved friends had sat by 
her fireside. Joy and griefbirth and deathhad made 
sacred forever this little house of dreams. 
And now she must leave it. She knew thateven while 
she had contended against the idea to Gilbert. The 
little house was outgrown. Gilbert's interests made 
the change necessary; his worksuccessful though it 
had beenwas hampered by his location. Anne realised 
that the end of their life in this dear place drew 
nighand that she must face the fact bravely. But how 
her heart ached! 
It will be just like tearing something out of my 
life,she sobbed. "And ohif I could hope that some 
nice folk would come here in our place--or even that it 
would be left vacant. That itself would be better than 
having it overrun with some horde who know nothing of 
the geography of dreamlandand nothing of the history 
that has given this house its soul and its identity. 
And if such a tribe come here the place will go to rack 
and ruin in no time--an old place goes down so quickly 
if it is not carefully attended to. They'll tear up my 
garden--and let the Lombardies get ragged--and the 
paling will come to look like a mouth with half the 
teeth missing--and the roof will leak--and the plaster 
fall--and they'll stuff pillows and rags in broken 
window panes--and everything will be out-at-elbows." 
Anne's imagination pictured forth so vividly the coming 
degeneration of her dear little house that it hurt her 
as severely as if it had already been an accomplished 
fact. She sat down on the stairs and had a long
bitter cry. Susan found her there and enquired with 
much concern what the trouble was. 
You have not quarrelled with the doctor, have you now, 
Mrs. Doctor, dear? But if you have, do not worry. It 
is a thing quite likely to happen to married couples, I 
am told, although I have had no experience that way 
myself. He will be sorry, and you can soon make it 
up.
No, no, Susan, we haven't quarrelled. It's 
only--Gilbert is going to buy the Morgan place, and 
we'll have to go and live at the Glen. And it will 
break my heart.
Susan did not enter into Anne's feelings at all. She 
wasindeedquite rejoiced over the prospect of living 
at the Glen. Her one grievance against her place in 
the little house was its lonesome location. 
Why, Mrs. Doctor, dear, it will be splendid. The 
Morgan house is such a fine, big one.
I hate big houses,sobbed Anne. 
Oh, well, you will not hate them by the time you have 
half a dozen children,remarked Susan calmly. "And 
this house is too small already for us. We have no 
spare roomsince Mrs. Moore is hereand that pantry 
is the most aggravating place I ever tried to work in. 
There is a corner every way you turn. Besidesit is 
out-of-the-world down here. There is really nothing at 
all but scenery." 
Out of your world perhaps, Susan--but not out of 
mine,said Anne with a faint smile. 
I do not quite understand you, Mrs. Doctor, dear, but 
of course I am not well educated. But if Dr. Blythe 
buys the Morgan place he will make no mistake, and that 
you may tie to. They have water in it, and the 
pantries and closets are beautiful, and there is not 
another such cellar in P. E. Island, so I have been 
told. Why, the cellar here, Mrs. Doctor, dear, has 
been a heart-break to me, as well you know.
Oh, go away, Susan, go away,said Anne forlornly. 
Cellars and pantries and closets don't make a HOME. 
Why don't you weep with those who weep?
Well, I never was much hand for weeping, Mrs. Doctor, 
dear. I would rather fall to and cheer people up than 
weep with them. Now, do not you cry and spoil your 
pretty eyes. This house is very well and has served 
your turn, but it is high time you had a better.
Susan's point of view seemed to be that of most people. 
Leslie was the only one who sympathised 
understandingly with Anne. She had a good crytoo
when she heard the news. Then they both dried their 
tears and went to work at the preparations for moving. 
Since we must go let us go as soon as we can and have 
it over,said poor Anne with bitter resignation. 
You know you will like that lovely old place at the 
Glen after you have lived in it long enough to have 
dear memories woven about it,said Leslie. "Friends 
will come thereas they have come here-- happiness 
will glorify it for you. Nowit's just a house to 
you--but the years will make it a home." 
Anne and Leslie had another cry the next week when they 
shortened Little Jem. Anne felt the tragedy of it 
until evening when in his long nightie she found her 
own dear baby again. 
But it will be rompers next--and then trousers--and in 
no time he will be grown-up,she sighed. 
Well, you would not want him to stay a baby always, 
Mrs. Doctor, dear, would you?said Susan. "Bless his 
innocent hearthe looks too sweet for anything in his 
little short dresseswith his dear feet sticking out. 
And think of the save in the ironingMrs. Doctordear." 
Anne, I have just had a letter from Owen,said 
Leslieentering with a bright face. "Andoh! I have 
such good news. He writes me that he is going to buy 
this place from the church trustees and keep it to 
spend our summer vacations in. Anneare you not glad?" 
Oh, Leslie, `glad' isn't the word for it! It seems 
almost too good to be true. I sha'n't feel half so 
badly now that I know this dear spot will never be 
desecrated by a vandal tribe, or left to tumble down in 
decay. Why, it's lovely! It's lovely!
One October morning Anne wakened to the realisation 
that she had slept for the last time under the roof of 
her little house. The day was too busy to indulge 
regret and when evening came the house was stripped and 
bare. Anne and Gilbert were alone in it to say 
farewell. Leslie and Susan and Little Jem had gone to 
the Glen with the last load of furniture. The sunset 
light streamed in through the curtainless windows. 
It has all such a heart-broken, reproachful look, 
hasn't it?said Anne. "OhI shall be so homesick at 
the Glen tonight!" 
We have been very happy here, haven't we, Anne-girl?
said Gilberthis voice full of feeling. 
Anne chokedunable to answer. Gilbert waited for her 
at the fir-tree gatewhile she went over the house and 
said farewell to every room. She was going away; but 
the old house would still be therelooking seaward 
through its quaint windows. The autumn winds would 
blow around it mournfullyand the gray rain would beat 
upon it and the white mists would come in from the sea 
to enfold it; and the moonlight would fall over it and 
light up the old paths where the schoolmaster and his 
bride had walked. There on that old harbor shore the 
charm of story would linger; the wind would still 
whistle alluringly over the silver sand-dunes; the 
waves would still call from the red rock-coves. 
But we will be gone,said Anne through her tears. 
She went outclosing and locking the door behind her. 
Gilbert was waiting for her with a smile. The 
lighthouse star was gleaming northward. The little 
gardenwhere only marigolds still bloomedwas already 
hooding itself in shadows. 
Anne knelt down and kissed the worn old step which she 
had crossed as a bride. 
Good-bye, dear little house of dreams,she said.